Produced by Al Haines, Cindy Beyer & the online Distributed
Proofreaders Canada team at http://www.pgdpcanada.net











                          [Cover Illustration]




[Illustration: Standing above him was Jad-bal-ja, the Golden Lion]




                             TARZAN AND THE
                              GOLDEN LION

                                   BY

                          EDGAR RICE BURROUGHS

                               AUTHOR OF

                           THE TARZAN BOOKS,
                            THE MARS BOOKS,
                            THE MUCKER, ETC.

                             ILLUSTRATED BY
                           J. ALLEN ST. JOHN

                             [Illustration]

                            GROSSET & DUNLAP
                        PUBLISHERS     NEW YORK




                               Copyright
                          Edgar Rice Burroughs
                                  1923
                         Published March, 1923
                     _Copyrighted in Great Britain_


               _Printed in the United States of America_




                                CONTENTS

                       I The Golden Lion
                      II The Training of Jad-bal-ja
                     III A Meeting of Mystery
                      IV What the Footprints Told
                       V The Fatal Drops
                      VI Death Steals Behind
                     VII “You Must Sacrifice Him”
                    VIII Mystery of the Past
                      IX The Shaft of Death
                       X Mad Treachery
                      XI Strange Incense Burns
                     XII The Golden Ingots
                    XIII A Strange, Flat Tower
                     XIV The Chamber of Horrors
                      XV The Map of Blood
                     XVI The Diamond Hoard
                    XVII The Torture of Fire
                   XVIII The Spoor of Revenge
                     XIX A Barbed Shaft Kills
                      XX The Dead Return
                     XXI An Escape and a Capture




                             ILLUSTRATIONS

              Standing above him was Jad-bal-ja, the Golden
                Lion

              He caught the little lion by the scruff of
                its neck

              Before him was the body of a giant anthropoid

              “Upon the third day Tarzan shall die beneath
                my knife”

              Tarzan saw a white man, bald and old and
                shriveled with a long white beard

              The Golden Lion with two mighty bounds was
                upon the High Priest

              Hunting together, the man and the great lion
                trod the paths toward home

              With a cry of terror the Spaniard dived into
                the river




                       Tarzan and the Golden Lion




                               CHAPTER I
                            THE GOLDEN LION


SABOR, the lioness, suckled her young—a single fuzzy ball, spotted like
Sheeta, the leopard. She lay in the warm sunshine before the rocky
cavern that was her lair, stretched out upon her side with half closed
eyes, yet Sabor was alert. There had been three of these little, fuzzy
balls at first—two daughters and a son—and Sabor and Numa, their sire,
had been proud of them; proud and happy. But kills had not been
plentiful, and Sabor, undernourished, had been unable to produce
sufficient milk to nourish properly three lusty cubs, and then a cold
rain had come, and the little ones had sickened. Only the strongest
survived—the two daughters had died. Sabor had mourned, pacing to and
fro beside the pitiful bits of bedraggled fur, whining and moaning. Now
and again she would nose them with her muzzle as though she would awaken
them from the long sleep that knows no waking. At last, however, she
abandoned her efforts, and now her whole savage heart was filled with
concern for the little male cub that remained to her. That was why Sabor
was more alert than usual.

Numa, the lion, was away. Two nights before he had made a kill and
dragged it to their lair and last night he had fared forth again, but he
had not returned. Sabor was thinking, as she half dozed, of Wappi, the
plump antelope, that her splendid mate might this very minute be
dragging through the tangled jungle to her. Or perhaps it would be
Pacco, the zebra, whose flesh was the best beloved of her kind—juicy,
succulent Pacco. Sabor’s mouth watered.

Ah, what was that? The shadow of a sound had come to those keen ears.
She raised her head, cocking it first upon one side and then the other,
as with up-pricked ears she sought to catch the faintest repetition of
that which had disturbed her. Her nose sniffed the air. There was but
the suggestion of a breeze, but what there was moved toward her from the
direction of the sound she had heard, and which she still heard in a
slightly increasing volume that told her that whatever was making it was
approaching her. As it drew closer the beast’s nervousness increased and
she rolled over on her belly, shutting off the milk supply from the cub,
which vented its disapproval in miniature growls until a low, querulous
whine from the lioness silenced him, then he stood at her side, looking
first at her and then in the direction toward which she looked, cocking
his little head first on one side and then on the other.

Evidently there was a disturbing quality in the sound that Sabor
heard—something that inspired a certain restlessness, if not actual
apprehension—though she could not be sure as yet that it boded ill. It
might be her great lord returning, but it did not sound like the
movement of a lion, certainly not like a lion dragging a heavy kill. She
glanced at her cub, breathing as she did so a plaintive whine. There was
always the fear that some danger menaced him—this last of her little
family—but she, Sabor the lioness, was there to defend him.

Presently the breeze brought to her nostrils the scent spoor of the
thing that moved toward her through the jungle. Instantly the troubled
mother-face was metamorphosed into a bare-fanged, glittering-eyed mask
of savage rage, for the scent that had come up to her through the jungle
was the hated man-scent. She rose to her feet, her head flattened, her
sinuous tail twitching nervously. Through that strange medium by which
animals communicate with one another she cautioned her cub to lie down
and remain where he was until she returned, then she moved rapidly and
silently to meet the intruder.

The cub had heard what its mother heard and now he caught the smell of
man—an unfamiliar smell that had never impinged upon his nostrils
before, yet a smell that he knew at once for that of an enemy—a smell
that brought a reaction as typical as that which marked the attitude of
the grown lioness, bringing the hairs along his little spine erect and
baring his tiny fangs. As the adult moved quickly and stealthily into
the underbrush the small cub, ignoring her injunction, followed after
her, his hind quarters wobbling from side to side, after the manner of
the very young of his kind, the ridiculous gait comporting ill with the
dignified bearing of his fore quarters; but the lioness, intent upon
that which lay before her, did not know that he followed her.

There was dense jungle before the two for a hundred yards, but through
it the lions had worn a tunnel-like path to their lair; and then there
was a small clearing through which ran a well-worn jungle trail, out of
the jungle at one end of the clearing and into the jungle again at the
other. As Sabor reached the clearing she saw the object of her fear and
hatred well within it. What if the man-thing were not hunting her or
hers? What if he even dreamed not of their presence? These facts were as
nothing to Sabor, the lioness, today. Ordinarily she would have let him
pass unmolested, so long as he did not come close enough to threaten the
safety of her cub; or, cubless, she would have slunk away at the first
intimation of his approach. But today the lioness was nervous and
fearful—fearful because of the single cub that remained to her—her
maternal instincts centered threefold, perhaps, upon this lone and
triply loved survivor—and so she did not wait for the man to threaten
the safety of her little one; but instead she moved to meet him and to
stop him. From the soft mother she had become a terrifying creature of
destruction, her brain obsessed by a single thought—to kill.

She did not hesitate an instant at the edge of the clearing, nor did she
give the slightest warning. The first intimation that the black warrior
had that there was a lion within twenty miles of him, was the terrifying
apparition of this devil-faced cat charging across the clearing toward
him with the speed of an arrow. The black was not searching for lions.
Had he known that there was one near he would have given it a wide
berth. He would have fled now had there been anywhere to flee. The
nearest tree was farther from him than was the lioness. She could
overhaul him before he would have covered a quarter of the distance.
There was no hope and there was only one thing to do. The beast was
almost upon him and behind her he saw a tiny cub. The man bore a heavy
spear. He carried it far back with his right hand and hurled it at the
very instant that Sabor rose to seize him. The spear passed through the
savage heart and almost simultaneously the giant jaws closed upon the
face and skull of the warrior. The momentum of the lioness carried the
two heavily to the ground, dead except for a few spasmodic twitchings of
their muscles.

The orphaned cub stopped twenty feet away and surveyed the first great
catastrophe of his life with questioning eyes. He wanted to approach his
dam but a natural fear of the man-scent held him away. Presently he
commenced to whine in a tone that always brought his mother to him
hurriedly; but this time she did not come—she did not even rise and
look toward him. He was puzzled—he could not understand it. He
continued to cry, feeling all the while more sad and more lonely.
Gradually he crept closer to his mother. He saw that the strange
creature she had killed did not move and after a while he felt less
terror of it, so that at last he found the courage to come quite close
to his mother and sniff at her. He still whined to her, but she did not
answer. It dawned on him at last that there was something wrong—that
his great, beautiful mother was not as she had been—a change had come
over her; yet still he clung to her, crying much until at last he fell
asleep, cuddled close to her dead body.

It was thus that Tarzan found him—Tarzan and Jane, his wife, and their
son, Korak the Killer, returning from the mysterious land of Pal-ul-don
from which the two men had rescued Jane Clayton. At the sound of their
approach the cub opened his eyes and rising, flattened his ears and
snarled at them, backing close against his dead mother. At sight of him
the ape-man smiled.

“Plucky little devil,” he commented, taking in the story of the tragedy
at a single glance. He approached the spitting cub, expecting it to turn
and run away; but it did nothing of the sort. Instead it snarled more
ferociously and struck at his extended hand as he stooped and reached
for it.

“What a brave little fellow,” cried Jane. “Poor little orphan!”

“He’s going to make a great lion, or he would have if his dam had
lived,” said Korak. “Look at that back—as straight and strong as a
spear. Too bad the rascal has got to die.”

“He doesn’t have to die,” returned Tarzan.

“There’s not much chance for him—he’ll need milk for a couple of months
more, and who’s going to get it for him?”

“I am,” replied Tarzan.

“You’re going to adopt him?”

Tarzan nodded.

Korak and Jane laughed. “That’ll be fine,” commented the former.

“Lord Greystoke, foster mother to the son of Numa,” laughed Jane.

Tarzan smiled with them, but he did not cease his attentions toward the
cub. Reaching out suddenly he caught the little lion by the scruff of
its neck and then stroking it gently he talked to it in a low, crooning
tone. I do not know what he said; but perhaps the cub did, for presently
it ceased its struggles and no longer sought to scratch or bite the
caressing hand. After that he picked it up and held it against his
breast. It did not seem afraid now, nor did it even bare its fangs
against this close proximity to the erstwhile hated man-scent.

“How do you do it?” exclaimed Jane Clayton.

Tarzan shrugged his broad shoulders. “Your kind are not afraid of
you—these are really my kind, try to civilize me as you will, and
perhaps that is why they are not afraid of me when I give them the signs
of friendship. Even this little rascal seems to know it, doesn’t he?”

“I can never understand it,” commented Korak. “I think I am rather
familiar with African animals, yet I haven’t the power over them or the
understanding that you have. Why is it?”

“There is but one Tarzan,” said Lady Greystoke, smiling at her son
teasingly, and yet her tone was not without a note of pride.

“Remember that I was born among beasts and, raised by beasts,” Tarzan
reminded him. “Perhaps after all my father was an ape—you know Kala
always insisted that he was.”

“John! How can you?” exclaimed Jane. “You know perfectly well who your
father and mother were.”

Tarzan looked solemnly at his son and closed, one eye. “Your mother
never can learn to appreciate the fine qualities of the anthropoids. One
might almost think that she objected to the suggestion that she had
mated with one of them.”

“John Clayton, I shall never speak to you again if you don’t stop saying
such hideous things. I am ashamed of you. It is bad enough that you are
an unregenerate wild-man, without trying to suggest that you may be an
ape into the bargain.”



The long journey from Pal-ul-don was almost completed—inside the week
they should be again at the site of their former home. Whether anything
now remained of the ruins the Germans had left was problematical. The
barns and outhouses had all been burned and the interior of the bungalow
partially wrecked. Those of the Waziri, the faithful native retainers of
the Greystokes, who had not been killed by Hauptman Fritz Schneider’s
soldiers, had rallied to the beat of the war-drum and gone to place
themselves at the disposal of the English in whatever capacity they
might be found useful to the great cause of humanity. This much Tarzan
had known before he set out in search of Lady Jane; but how many of his
warlike Waziri had survived the war and what further had befallen his
vast estates he did not know. Wandering tribes of natives, or raiding
bands of Arab slavers might have completed the demolition inaugurated by
the Hun, and it was likely, too, that the jungle had swept up and
reclaimed its own, covering his clearings and burying amidst its riot of
lush verdure every sign of man’s brief trespass upon its world-old
preserves.

Following the adoption of the tiny Numa, Tarzan was compelled to an
immediate consideration of the needs of his _protégé_ in planning his
marches and his halts, for the cub must have sustenance and that
sustenance could be naught but milk. Lion’s milk was out of the
question, but fortunately they were now in a comparatively well peopled
country where villages were not infrequent and where the great Lord of
the Jungle was known, feared, and respected, and so it was that upon the
afternoon of the day he had found the young lion Tarzan approached a
village for the purpose of obtaining milk for the cub.

At first the natives appeared sullen and indifferent, looking with
contempt upon whites who traveled without a large safari—with contempt
and without fear. With no safari these strangers could carry no presents
for them, nor anything wherewith to repay for the food they would
doubtless desire, and with no askari they could not demand food, or
rather they could not enforce an order, nor could they protect
themselves should it seem worth while to molest them. Sullen and
indifferent the natives seemed, yet they were scarce unconcerned, their
curiosity being aroused by the unusual apparel and ornamentation of
these whites. They saw them almost as naked as themselves and armed
similarly except that one, the younger man, carried a rifle. All three
wore the trappings of Pal-ul-don, primitive and barbaric, and entirely
strange to the eyes of the simple blacks.

“Where is your chief?” asked Tarzan as he strode into the village
amongst the women, the children, and the yapping dogs.

A few dozing warriors rose from the shadows of the huts where they had
been lying and approached the newcomers.

“The chief sleeps,” replied one. “Who are you to awaken him? What do you
want?”

“I wish to speak to your chief. Go and fetch him!”

The warrior looked at him in wide-eyed amaze, and then broke into a loud
laugh.

“The chief must be brought to him,” he cried, addressing his fellows,
and then, laughing loudly, he slapped his thigh and nudged those nearest
him with his elbows.

“Tell him,” continued the ape-man, “that Tarzan would speak with him.”

Instantly the attitude of his auditors underwent a remarkable
transformation—they fell back from him and they ceased laughing—their
eyes very wide and round. He who had laughed loudest became suddenly
solemn. “Bring mats,” he cried, “for Tarzan and his people to sit upon,
while I fetch Umanga the chief,” and off he ran as fast as he could as
though glad of the excuse to escape the presence of the mighty one he
feared he had offended.

It made no difference now that they had no safari, no askari, nor any
presents. The villagers were vying with one another to do them honor.
Even before the chief came many had already brought presents of food and
ornaments. Presently Umanga appeared. He was an old man who had been a
chief even before Tarzan of the Apes was born. His manner was
patriarchal and dignified and he greeted his guest as one great man
might greet another, yet he was undeniably pleased that the Lord of the
Jungle had honored his village with a visit.

When Tarzan explained his wishes and exhibited the lion cub Umanga
assured him that there would be milk a-plenty so long as Tarzan honored
them with his presence—warm milk, fresh from the chief’s own goats. As
they palavered the ape-man’s keen eyes took in every detail of the
village and its people, and presently they alighted upon a large bitch
among the numerous curs that overran the huts and the street. Her udder
was swollen with milk and the sight of it suggested a plan to Tarzan. He
jerked a thumb in the direction of the animal. “I would buy her,” he
said to Umanga.

“She is yours, Bwana, without payment,” replied the chief. “She whelped
two days since and last night her pups were all stolen from her nest,
doubtless by a great snake; but if you will accept them I will give you
instead as many younger and fatter dogs as you wish, for I am sure that
this one would prove poor eating.”

“I do not wish to eat her,” replied Tarzan. “I will take her along with
me to furnish milk for the cub. Have her brought to me.”

Some boys then caught the animal and tying a thong about its neck
dragged it to the ape-man. Like the lion, the dog was at first afraid,
for the scent of the Tarmangani was not as the scent of the blacks, and
it snarled and snapped at its new master; but at length he won the
animal’s confidence so that it lay quietly beside him while he stroked
its head. To get the lion close to it was, however, another matter, for
here both were terrified by the enemy scent of the other—the lion
snarling and spitting and the dog bare-fanged and growling. It required
patience—infinite patience—but at last the thing was an accomplished
fact and the cur bitch suckled the son of Numa. Hunger had succeeded in
overcoming the natural suspicion of the lion, while the firm yet kindly
attitude of the ape-man had won the confidence of the canine, which had
been accustomed through life to more of cuffs and kicks than kindness.

That night Tarzan had the dog tied in the hut he occupied, and twice
before morning he made her lie while the cub fed. The next day they took
leave of Umanga and his people and with the dog still upon a leash
trotting beside them they set off once more toward home, the young lion
cuddled in the hollow of one of Tarzan’s arms or carried in a sack slung
across his shoulder.

They named the lion Jad-bal-ja, which in the language of the
pithecanthropi of Pal-ul-don, means the Golden Lion, because of his
color. Every day he became more accustomed to them and to his foster
mother, who finally came to accept him as flesh of her flesh. The bitch
they called Za, meaning girl. The second day they removed her leash and
she followed them willingly through the jungle, nor ever after did she
seek to leave them, nor was happy unless she was near one of the three.

As the moment approached when the trail should break from the jungle
onto the edge of the rolling plain where their home had been, the three
were filled with suppressed excitement, though none uttered a syllable
of the hope and fear that was in the heart of each. What would they
find? What _could_ they find other than the same tangled mass of
vegetation that the ape-man had cleared away to build his home when
first he had come there with his bride?

At last they stepped from the concealing verdure of the forest to look
out across the plain where, in the distance, the outlines of the
bungalow had once been clearly discernible nestled amidst the trees and
shrubs that had been retained or imported to beautify the grounds.

“Look!” cried Lady Jane. “It is there—it is still there!”

“But what are those other things to the left, beyond it?” asked Korak.

“They are the huts of natives,” replied Tarzan.

“The fields are being cultivated!” exclaimed the woman.

“And some of the outbuildings have been rebuilt,” said Tarzan. “It can
mean but one thing—the Waziri have come back from the war—my faithful
Waziri. They have restored what the Hun destroyed and are watching over
our home until we return.”




[Illustration: He caught the little lion by the scruff of its neck]




                               CHAPTER II
                       THE TRAINING OF JAD-BAL-JA


AND so Tarzan of the Apes, and Jane Clayton, and Korak came home after a
long absence and with them came Jad-bal-ja, the golden lion, and Za, the
bitch. Among the first to meet them and to welcome them home was old
Muviro, father of Wasimbu, who had given his life in defense of the home
and wife of the ape-man.

“Ah, Bwana,” cried the faithful black, “my old eyes are made young again
by the sight of you. It has been long that you have been gone, but
though many doubted that you would return, old Muviro knew that the
great world held nothing that might overcome his master. And so he knew,
too, that his master would return to the home of his love and the land
where his faithful Waziri awaited him; but that she, whom we have
mourned as dead, should have returned is beyond belief, and great shall
be the rejoicing in the huts of the Waziri tonight. And the earth shall
tremble to the dancing feet of the warriors and the heavens ring with
the glad cries of their women, since the three they love most on earth
have come back to them.”

And in truth, great indeed was the rejoicing in the huts of the Waziri.
And not for one night alone, but for many nights did the dancing and the
rejoicing continue until Tarzan was compelled to put a stop to the
festivities that he and his family might gain a few hours of unbroken
slumber. The ape-man found that not only had his faithful Waziri, under
the equally faithful guidance of his English foreman, Jervis, completely
rehabilitated his stables, corrals, and outbuildings as well as the
native huts, but had restored the interior of the bungalow, so that in
all outward appearances the place was precisely as it had been before
the raid of the Germans.

Jervis was at Nairobi on the business of the estate, and it was some
days after their arrival that he returned to the ranch. His surprise and
happiness were no less genuine than those of the Waziri. With the chief
and warriors he sat for hours at the feet of the Big Bwana, listening to
an account of the strange land of Pal-ul-don and the adventures that had
befallen the three during Lady Greystoke’s captivity there, and with the
Waziri he marveled at the queer pets the ape-man had brought back with
him. That Tarzan might have fancied a mongrel native cur was strange
enough, but that he should have adopted a cub of his hereditary enemies,
Numa and Sabor, seemed beyond all belief. And equally surprising to them
all was the manner of Tarzan’s education of the cub.

The golden lion and his foster mother occupied a corner of the ape-man’s
bedroom, and many was the hour each day that he spent in training and
educating the little spotted, yellow ball—all playfulness and affection
now, but one day to grow into a great, savage beast of prey.

As the days passed and the golden lion grew, Tarzan taught it many
tricks—to fetch and carry, to lie motionless in hiding at his almost
inaudible word of command, to move from point to point as he indicated,
to hunt for hidden things by scent and to retrieve them, and when meat
was added to its diet he fed it always in a way that brought grim smiles
to the savage lips of the Waziri warriors, for Tarzan had built for him
a dummy in the semblance of a man and the meat that the lion was to eat
was fastened always at the throat of the dummy. Never did the manner of
feeding vary. At a word from the ape-man the golden lion would crouch,
belly to the ground, and then Tarzan would point at the dummy and
whisper the single word “kill.” However hungry he might be, the lion
learned never to move toward his meat until that single word had been
uttered by its master; and then with a rush and a savage growl it drove
straight for the flesh. While it was little it had difficulty at first
in clambering up the dummy to the savory morsel fastened at the figure’s
throat, but as it grew older and larger it gained the objective more
easily, and finally a single leap would carry it to its goal and down
would go the dummy upon its back with the young lion tearing at its
throat.

There was one lesson that, of all the others, was most difficult to
learn and it is doubtful that any other than Tarzan of the Apes, reared
by beasts, among beasts, could have overcome the savage blood-lust of
the carnivore and rendered his natural instinct subservient to the will
of his master. It took weeks and months of patient endeavor to
accomplish this single item of the lion’s education, which consisted in
teaching him that at the word “fetch” he must find any indicated object
and return with it to his master, even the dummy with raw meat tied at
its throat, and that he must not touch the meat nor harm the dummy nor
any other article that he was fetching, but place them carefully at the
ape-man’s feet. Afterward he learned always to be sure of his reward,
which usually consisted in a double portion of the meat that he loved
best.

Lady Greystoke and Korak were often interested spectators of the
education of the golden lion, though the former expressed mystification
as to the purpose of such elaborate training of the young cub and some
misgivings as to the wisdom of the ape-man’s program.

“What in the world can you do with such a brute after he is grown?” she
asked. “He bids fair to be a mighty Numa. Being accustomed to men he
will be utterly fearless of them, and having fed always at the throat of
a dummy he will look there at the throat of living men for his food
hereafter.”

“He will feed only upon what I tell him to feed,” replied the ape-man.

“But you do not expect him to feed always upon men?” she interrogated,
laughingly.

“He will never feed upon men.”

“But how can you prevent it, having taught him from cubhood always to
feed upon men?”

“I am afraid, Jane, that you under-estimate the intelligence of a lion,
or else I very much over-estimate it. If your theory is correct the
hardest part of my work is yet before me, but if I am right it is
practically complete now. However, we will experiment a bit and see
which is right. We shall take Jad-bal-ja out upon the plain with us this
afternoon. Game is plentiful and we shall have no difficulty in
ascertaining just how much control I have over young Numa after all.”

“I’ll wager a hundred pounds,” said Korak, laughing, “that he does just
what he jolly well pleases after he gets a taste of live blood.”

“You’re on, my son,” said the ape-man. “I think I am going to show you
and your mother this afternoon what you or anyone else never dreamed
could be accomplished.”

“Lord Greystoke, the world’s premier animal trainer!” cried Lady
Greystoke, and Tarzan joined them in their laughter.

“It is not animal training,” said the ape-man. “The plan upon which I
work would be impossible to anyone but Tarzan of the Apes. Let us take a
hypothetical case to illustrate what I mean. There comes to you some
creature whom you hate, whom by instinct and heredity you consider a
deadly enemy. You are afraid of him. You understand no word that he
speaks. Finally, by means sometimes brutal he impresses upon your mind
his wishes. You may do the thing he wants, but do you do it with a
spirit of unselfish loyalty? You do not—you do it under compulsion,
hating the creature that forces his will upon you. At any moment that
you felt it was in your power to do so, you would disobey him. You would
even go further—you would turn upon him and destroy him. On the other
hand, there comes to you one with whom you are familiar; he is a friend,
a protector. He understands and speaks the language that you understand
and speak. He has fed you, he has gained your confidence by kindness and
protection, he asks you to do something for him. Do you refuse? No, you
obey willingly. It is thus that the golden lion will obey me.”

“As long as it suits his purpose to do so,” commented Korak.

“Let me go a step farther then,” said the ape-man. “Suppose that this
creature, whom you love and obey, has the power to punish, even to kill
you, if it is necessary so to do to enforce his commands. How then about
your obedience?”

“We’ll see,” said Korak, “how easily the golden lion will make one
hundred pounds for me.”

That afternoon they set out across the plain, Jad-bal-ja following
Tarzan’s horse’s heels. They dismounted at a little clump of trees some
distance from the bungalow and from there proceeded onward warily toward
a swale in which antelopes were usually to be found, moving up which
they came cautiously to the heavy brush that bordered the swale upon
their side. There was Tarzan, Jane, and Korak, and close beside Tarzan
the golden lion—four jungle hunters—and of the four Jad-bal-ja, the
lion, was the least accomplished. Stealthily they crawled through the
brush, scarce a leaf rustling to their passage, until at last they
looked down into the swale upon a small herd of antelope grazing
peacefully below. Closest to them was an old buck, and him Tarzan
pointed out in some mysterious manner to Jad-bal-ja.

“Fetch him,” he whispered, and the golden lion rumbled a scarce audible
acknowledgment of the command.

Stealthily he worked his way through the brush. The antelopes fed on,
unsuspecting. The distance separating the lion from his prey was over
great for a successful charge, and so Jad-bal-ja waited, hiding in the
brush, until the antelope should either graze closer to him or turn its
back toward him. No sound came from the four watching the grazing
herbivora, nor did the latter give any indication of a suspicion of the
nearness of danger. The old buck moved slowly closer to Jad-bal-ja.
Almost imperceptibly the lion was gathering for the charge. The only
noticeable movement was the twitching of his tail’s tip, and then, as
lightning from the sky, as an arrow from a bow, he shot from immobility
to tremendous speed in an instant. He was almost upon the buck before
the latter realized the proximity of danger, and then it was too late,
for scarcely had the antelope wheeled than the lion rose upon its hind
legs and seized it, while the balance of the herd broke into precipitate
flight.

“Now,” said Korak, “we shall see.”

“He will bring the antelope to me,” said Tarzan confidently.

The golden lion hesitated a moment, growling over the carcass of his
kill. Then he seized it by the back and with his head turned to one side
dragged it along the ground beside him, as he made his way slowly back
toward Tarzan. Through the brush he dragged the slain antelope until he
had dropped it at the feet of his master, where he stood, looking up at
the face of the ape-man with an expression that could not have been
construed into aught but pride in his achievement and a plea for
commendation.

Tarzan stroked his head and spoke to him in a low voice, praising him,
and then, drawing his hunting knife, he cut the jugular of the antelope
and let the blood from the carcass. Jane and Korak stood close, watching
Jad-bal-ja—what would the lion do with the smell of fresh, hot blood in
his nostrils? He sniffed at it and growled, and with bared fangs he eyed
the three wickedly. The ape-man pushed him away with his open palm and
the lion growled again angrily and snapped at him.

Quick is Numa, quick is Bara, the deer, but Tarzan of the Apes is
lightning. So swiftly did he strike, and so heavily, that Jad-bal-ja was
falling on his back almost in the very instant that he had growled at
his master. Swiftly he came to his feet again and the two stood facing
one another.

“Down!” commanded the ape-man. “Lie down, Jad-bal-ja!” His voice was low
and firm. The lion hesitated but for an instant, and then lay down as
Tarzan of the Apes had taught him to do at the word of command. Tarzan
turned and lifted the carcass of the antelope to his shoulder.

“Come,” he said to Jad-bal-ja. “Heel!” and without another glance at the
carnivore he moved off toward the horses.

“I might have known it,” said Korak, with a laugh, “and saved my hundred
pounds.”

“Of course you might have known it,” said his mother.




                              CHAPTER III
                          A MEETING OF MYSTERY


A RATHER attractive-looking, though overdressed, young woman was dining
in a second-rate chop-house in London. She was noticeable, not so much
for her fine figure and coarsely beautiful face as for the size and
appearance of her companion, a large, well-proportioned man in the
mid-twenties, with such a tremendous beard that it gave him the
appearance of hiding in ambush. He stood fully three inches over six
feet. His shoulders were broad, his chest deep, and his hips narrow. His
physique, his carriage, everything about him, suggested indubitably the
trained athlete.

The two were in close conversation, a conversation that occasionally
gave every evidence of bordering upon heated argument.

“I tell you,” said the man, “that I do not see what we need of the
others. Why should they share with us—why divide into six portions that
which you and I might have alone?”

“It takes money to carry the plan through,” she replied, “and neither
you nor I have any money. _They_ have it and they will back us with
it—me for my knowledge and you for your appearance and your strength.
They searched for you, Esteban, for two years, and, now that they have
found you, I should not care to be in your shoes if you betrayed them.
They would just as soon slit your throat as not, Esteban, if they no
more than thought they couldn’t use you, now that you have all the
details of their plan. But if you should try to take all the profit from
them—” She paused, shrugging her shoulders. “No, my dear, I love life
too well to join you in any such conspiracy as that.”

“But I tell you, Flora, we ought to get more out of it than they want to
give. You furnish all the knowledge and I take all the risk—why
shouldn’t we have more than a sixth apiece?”

“Talk to them yourself, then, Esteban,” said the girl, with a shrug,
“but if you will take my advice you will be satisfied with what you are
offered. Not only have I the information, without which they can do
nothing, but I found you into the bargain, yet I do not ask it all—I
shall be perfectly satisfied with one-sixth, and I can assure you that
if you do not muddle the thing, one-sixth of what you bring out will be
enough for any one of us for the rest of his natural life.”

The man did not seem convinced, and the young woman had a feeling that
he would bear watching. Really, she knew very little about him, and had
seen him in person only a few times since her first discovery of him
some two months before, upon the screen of a London cinema house in a
spectacular feature in which he had played the rôle of a Roman soldier
of the Pretorian Guard.

Here his heroic size and perfect physique had alone entitled him to
consideration, for his part was a minor one, and doubtless of all the
thousands who saw him upon the silver sheet Flora Hawkes was the only
one who took more than a passing interest in him, and her interest was
aroused, not by his histrionic ability, but rather because for some two
years she and her confederates had been searching for such a type as
Esteban Miranda so admirably represented. To find him in the flesh bade
fair to prove difficult of accomplishment, but after a month of
seemingly fruitless searching she finally discovered him among a score
of extra men at the studio of one of London’s lesser producing
companies. She needed no other credentials than her good looks to form
his acquaintance, and while that was ripening into intimacy she made no
mention to him of the real purpose of her association with him.

That he was a Spaniard and apparently of good family was evident to her,
and that he was unscrupulous was to be guessed by the celerity with
which he agreed to take part in the shady transaction that had been
conceived in the mind of Flora Hawkes, and the details of which had been
perfected by her and her four confederates. So, therefore, knowing that
he was unscrupulous, she was aware that every precaution must be taken
to prevent him taking advantage of the knowledge of their plan that he
must one day have in detail, the key to which she, up to the present
moment, had kept entirely to herself, not even confiding it to any one
of her four other confederates.

They sat for a moment in silence, toying with the empty glasses from
which they had been drinking. Presently she looked up to find his gaze
fixed upon her and an expression in his eyes that even a less
sophisticated woman than Flora Hawkes might readily have interpreted.

“You can make me do anything you want, Flora,” he said, “for when I am
with you I forget the gold, and think only of that other reward which
you continually deny me, but which one day I shall win.”

“Love and business do not mix well,” replied the girl. “Wait until you
have succeeded in this work, Esteban, and then we may talk of love.”

“You do not love me,” he whispered, hoarsely. “I know—I have seen—that
each of the others loves you. That is why I could hate them. And if I
thought that you loved one of them, I could cut his heart out. Sometimes
I have thought that you did—first one of them and then another. You are
too familiar with them, Flora. I have seen John Peebles squeeze your
hand when he thought no one was looking, and when you dance with Dick
Throck he holds you too close and you dance cheek to cheek. I tell you I
do not like it, Flora, and one of these days I shall forget all about
the gold and think only of you, and then something will happen and there
will not be so many to divide the ingots that I shall bring back from
Africa. And Bluber and Kraski are almost as bad; perhaps Kraski is the
worst of all, for he is a good-looking devil and I do not like the way
in which you cast sheep’s eyes at him.”

The fire of growing anger was leaping to the girl’s eyes. With an angry
gesture she silenced him.

“What business is it of yours, _Señor_ Miranda, who I choose for my
friends, or how I treat them or how they treat me? I will have you
understand that I have known these men for years, while I have known you
for but a few weeks, and if any has a right to dictate my behavior,
which, thank God, none has, it would be one of them rather than you.”

His eyes blazed angrily.

“It is as I thought!” he cried. “You love one of them.” He half rose
from the table and leaned across it toward her, menacingly. “Just let me
find out which one it is and I will cut him into pieces!”

He ran his fingers through his long, black hair until it stood up on end
like the mane of an angry lion. His eyes were blazing with a light that
sent a chill of dread through the girl’s heart. He appeared a man
temporarily bereft of reason—if he were not a maniac he most certainly
looked one, and the girl was afraid and realized that she must placate
him.

“Come, come, Esteban,” she whispered softly, “there is no need for
working yourself into a towering rage over nothing. I have not said that
I loved one of these, nor have I said that I do not love you, but I am
not used to being wooed in such fashion. Perhaps your Spanish
_señoritas_ like it, but I am an English girl and if you love me treat
me as an English lover would treat me.”

“You have not said that you loved one of these others—no, but on the
other hand you have not said that you do not love one of them—tell me,
Flora, which one of them is it that you love?”

His eyes were still blazing, and his great frame trembling with
suppressed passion.

“I do not love any of them, Esteban,” she replied, “nor, as yet, do I
love you. But I could, Esteban, that much I will tell you. I could love
you, Esteban, as I could never love another, but I shall not permit
myself to do so until after you have returned and we are free to live
where and how we like. Then, maybe—but, even so, I do not promise.”

“You had better promise,” he said, sullenly, though evidently somewhat
mollified. “You had better promise, Flora, for I care nothing for the
gold if I may not have you also.”

“Hush,” she cautioned, “here they come now, and it is about time; they
are fully a half-hour late.”

The man turned his eyes in the direction of her gaze, and the two sat
watching the approach of four men who had just entered the chop-house.
Two of them were evidently Englishmen—big, meaty fellows of the middle
class, who looked what they really were, former pugilists; the third,
Adolph Bluber, was a short, fat German, with a round, red face and a
bull neck; the other, the youngest of the four, was by far the best
looking. His smooth face, clear complexion, and large dark eyes might of
themselves have proven sufficient grounds for Miranda’s jealousy, but
supplementing these were a mop of wavy, brown hair, the figure of a
Greek god and the grace of a Russian dancer, which, in truth, was what
Carl Kraski was when he chose to be other than a rogue.

The girl greeted the four pleasantly, while the Spaniard vouchsafed them
but a single, surly nod, as they found chairs and seated themselves at
the table.

“Hale!” cried Peebles, pounding the table to attract the attention of a
waiter, “let us ’ave hale.”

The suggestion met with unanimous approval, and as they waited for their
drink they spoke casually of unimportant things; the heat, the
circumstance that had delayed them, the trivial occurrences since they
had last met; throughout which Esteban sat in sullen silence, but after
the waiter had returned and they drank to Flora, with which ceremony it
had long been their custom to signalize each gathering, they got down to
business.

“Now,” cried Peebles, pounding the table with his meaty fist, “’ere we
are, and that’s that! We ’ave everything, Flora—the plans, the money,
_Señor_ Miranda—and are jolly well ready, old dear, for your part of
it.”

“How much money have you?” asked Flora. “It is going to take a lot of
money, and there is no use starting unless you have plenty to carry on
with.”

Peebles turned to Bluber. “There,” he said, pointing a pudgy finger at
him, “is the bloomin’ treasurer. ’E can tell you ’ow much we ’ave, the
fat rascal of a Dutchman.”

Bluber smiled an oily smile and rubbed his fat palms together. “Vell,”
he said, “how much you t’ink, Miss Flora, ve should have?”

“Not less than two thousand pounds to be on the safe side,” she replied
quickly.

“_Oi! Oi!_” exclaimed Bluber. “But dot is a lot of money—two t’ousand
pounds. _Oi! Oi!_”

The girl made a gesture of disgust. “I told you in the first place that
I wouldn’t have anything to do with a bunch of cheap screws, and that
until you had enough money to carry the thing out properly I would not
give you the maps and directions, without which you cannot hope to reach
the vaults, where there is stored enough gold to buy this whole, tight,
little island if half that what I have heard them say about it is true.
You can go along and spend your own money, but you’ve got to show me
that you have at least two thousand pounds to spend before I give up the
information that will make you the richest men in the world.”

“The blighter’s got the money,” growled Throck. “Blime if I know what
he’s beefin’ about.”

“He can’t help it,” growled the Russian, “it’s a racial characteristic;
Bluber would try to jew down the marriage license clerk if he were going
to get married.”

“Oh, vell,” sighed Bluber, “for vy should we spend more money than is
necessary? If ve can do it for vone t’ousand pounds so much the better.”

“Certainly,” snapped the girl, “and if it don’t take but one thousand,
that is all that you will have to spend, but you’ve got to have the two
thousand in case of emergencies, and from what I have seen of that
country you are likely to run up against more emergencies than anything
else.

“_Oi! Oi!_” cried Bluber.

“’E’s got the money all right,” said Peebles, “now let’s get busy.”

“He may have it, but I want to see it first,” replied the girl.

“Vat you t’ink; I carry all dot money around in my pocket?” cried
Bluber.

“Can’t you take our word for it?” grumbled Throck.

“You’re a nice bunch of crooks to ask me that,” she replied, laughing in
the face of the burly ruffians. “I’ll take Carl’s word for it, though;
if he tells me that you have it, and that it is in such shape that it
can, and will, be used to pay all the necessary expenses of our
expedition, I will believe him.”

Peebles and Throck scowled angrily, and Miranda’s eyes closed to two
narrow, nasty slits, as he directed his gaze upon the Russian. Bluber,
on the contrary, was affected not at all; the more he was insulted, the
better, apparently, he liked it. Toward one who treated him with
consideration or respect he would have become arrogant, while he fawned
upon the hand that struck him. Kraski, alone, smiled a self-satisfied
smile that set the blood of the Spaniard boiling.

“Bluber has the money, Flora,” he said; “each of us has contributed his
share. We’ll make Bluber treasurer, because we know that he will squeeze
the last farthing until it shrieks before he will let it escape him. It
is our plan now to set out from London in pairs.”

He drew a map from his pocket, and unfolding it, spread it out upon the
table before them. With his finger he indicated a point marked X. “Here
we will meet and here we will equip our expedition. Bluber and Miranda
will go first; then Peebles and Throck. By the time that you and I
arrive everything will be in shape for moving immediately into the
interior, where we shall establish a permanent camp, off the beaten
track and as near our objective as possible. Miranda will disport
himself behind his whiskers until he is ready to set out upon the final
stage of his long journey. I understand that he is well schooled in the
part that he is to play and that he can depict the character to
perfection. As he will have only ignorant natives and wild beasts to
deceive it should not tax his histrionic ability too greatly.” There was
a veiled note of sarcasm in the soft, drawling tone that caused the
black eyes of the Spaniard to gleam wickedly.

“Do I understand,” asked Miranda, his soft tone belying his angry scowl,
“that you and Miss Hawkes travel alone to X?”

“You do, unless your understanding is poor,” replied the Russian.

The Spaniard half rose from the table and leaned across it menacingly
toward Kraski. The girl, who was sitting next to him, seized his coat.

“None of that!” she said, dragging him back into his chair. “There has
been too much of it among you already, and if there is any more I shall
cut you all and seek more congenial companions for my expedition.”

“Yes, cut it out; ’ere we are, and that’s that!” exclaimed Peebles
belligerently.

“John’s right,” rumbled Throck, in his deep bass, “and I’m here to back
him up. Flora’s right, and I’m here to back her up. And if there is any
more of it, blime if I don’t bash a couple of you pretty ’uns,” and he
looked first at Miranda and then at Kraski.

“Now,” soothed Bluber, “let’s all shake hands and be good friends.”

“Right-o,” cried Peebles, “that’s the talk. Give ’im your ’and, Esteban.
Come, Carl, bury the ’atchet. We can’t start in on this thing with no
hanimosities, and ’ere we are, and that’s that.”

The Russian, feeling secure in his position with Flora, and therefore in
a magnanimous mood, extended his hand across the table toward the
Spaniard. For a moment Esteban hesitated.

“Come, man, shake!” growled Throck, “or you can go back to your job as
an extra man, blime, and we’ll find someone else to do your work and
divvy the swag with.”

Suddenly the dark countenance of the Spaniard was lighted by a pleasant
smile. He extended his hand quickly and clasped Kraski’s. “Forgive me,”
he said, “I am hot-tempered, but I mean nothing. Miss Hawkes is right,
we must all be friends, and here’s my hand on it, Kraski, as far as I am
concerned.”

“Good,” said Kraski, “and I am sorry if I offended you;” but he forgot
that the other was an actor, and if he could have seen into the depths
of that dark soul he would have shuddered.

“Und now, dot ve are all good friends,” said Bluber, rubbing his hands
together unctuously, “vy not arrange for vhen ve shall commence starting
to finish up everyt’ings? Miss Flora, she gives me the map und der
directions und we start commencing immediately.”

“Loan me a pencil, Carl,” said the girl, and when the man had handed her
one she searched out a spot upon the map some distance into the interior
from X, where she drew a tiny circle. “This is O,” she said. “When we
all reach here you shall have the final directions and not before.”

Bluber threw up his hands. “_Oi!_ Miss Flora, vhat you t’ink, ve spend
two t’ousand pounds to buy a pig in a poke? _Oi! Oi!_ you vouldn’t ask
us to do dot? Ve must see everyt’ing, ve must know everyt’ing, before ve
spend vun farthing.”

“Yes, and ’ere we are, and that’s that!” roared John Peebles, striking
the table with his fist.

The girl rose leisurely from her seat. “Oh, very well,” she said with a
shrug. “If you feel that way about it we might as well call it all off.”

“Oh, vait, vait, Miss Flora,” cried Bluber, rising hurriedly. “Don’t be
ogcited. But can’t you see vere ve are? Two t’ousand pounds is a lot of
money, and ve are good business men. Ve shouldn’t be spending it all
vit’out getting not’ings for it.”

“I am not asking you to spend it and get nothing for it,” replied the
girl, tartly; “but if anyone has got to trust anyone else in this
outfit, it is you who are going to trust me. If I give you all the
information I have, there is nothing in the world that could prevent you
from going ahead and leaving me out in the cold, and I don’t intend that
that shall happen.”

“But we are not gonoffs, Miss Flora,” insisted the Jew. “Ve vould not
t’ink for vun minute of cheating you.”

“You’re not angels, either, Bluber, any of you,” retorted the girl. “If
you want to go ahead with this you’ve got to do it in my way, and I am
going to be there at the finish to see that I get what is coming to me.
You’ve taken my word for it, up to the present time, that I had the
dope, and now you’ve got to take it the rest of the way or all bets are
off. What good would it do me to go over into a bally jungle and suffer
all the hardships that we are bound to suffer, dragging you along with
me, if I were not going to be able to deliver the goods when I got
there? And I am not such a softy as to think I could get away with it
with a bunch of bandits like you if I tried to put anything of that kind
over on you. And as long as I do play straight I feel perfectly safe,
for I know that either Esteban or Carl will look after me, and I don’t
know but what the rest of you would, too. Is it a go or isn’t it?”

“Vell, John, vot do you und Dick t’ink?” asked Bluber, addressing the
two ex-prize-fighters. “Carl, I know he vill t’ink v’hatever Flora
t’inks. Hey? V’at?”

“Blime,” said Throck, “I never was much of a hand at trusting nobody
unless I had to, but it looks now as though we had to trust Flora.”

“Same ’ere,” said John Peebles. “If you try any funny work, Flora—” He
made a significant movement with his finger across his throat.

“I understand, John,” said the girl with a smile, “and I know that you
would do it as quickly for two pounds as you would for two thousand. But
you are all agreed, then, to carry on according to my plans? You too,
Carl?”

The Russian nodded. “Whatever the rest say goes with me,” he remarked.

And so the gentle little coterie discussed their plans in so far as they
could—each minutest detail that would be necessary to place them all at
the O which the girl had drawn upon the map.




                               CHAPTER IV
                        WHAT THE FOOTPRINTS TOLD


WHEN Jad-bal-ja, the golden lion, was two years old, he was as
magnificent a specimen of his kind as the Greystokes had ever looked
upon. In size he was far above the average of that attained by mature
males; in conformation he was superb, his noble head and his great black
mane giving him the appearance of a full-grown male, while in
intelligence he far outranked his savage brothers of the forest.

Jad-bal-ja was a never-ending source of pride and delight to the ape-man
who had trained him so carefully, and nourished him cunningly for the
purpose of developing to the full all the latent powers within him. The
lion no longer slept at the foot of his master’s bed, but occupied a
strong cage that Tarzan had had constructed for him at the rear of the
bungalow, for who knew better than the ape-man that a lion, wherever he
may be or however he may have been raised, is yet a lion—a savage
flesh-eater. For the first year he had roamed at will about the house
and grounds; after that he went abroad only in the company of Tarzan.
Often the two roamed the plain and the jungle hunting together. In a way
the lion was almost equally as familiar with Jane and Korak, and neither
of them feared or mistrusted him, but toward Tarzan of the Apes did he
show the greatest affection. The blacks of Tarzan’s household he
tolerated, nor did he ever offer to molest any of the domestic animals
or fowl, after Tarzan had impressed upon him in his early cubhood that
appropriate punishment followed immediately upon any predatory excursion
into the corrals or henhouses. The fact that he was never permitted to
become ravenously hungry was doubtless the deciding factor in
safeguarding the live stock of the farm.

The man and the beast seemed to understand one another perfectly. It is
doubtful that the lion understood all that Tarzan said to him, but be
that as it may the ease with which he communicated his wishes to the
lion bordered upon the uncanny. The obedience that a combination of
sternness and affection had elicited from the cub had become largely
habit in the grown lion. At Tarzan’s command he would go to great
distances and bring back antelope or zebra, laying his kill at his
master’s feet without offering to taste the flesh himself, and he had
even retrieved living animals without harming them. Such, then, was the
golden lion that roamed the primeval forest with his godlike master.

It was at about this time that there commenced to drift in to the
ape-man rumors of a predatory band to the west and south of his estate;
ugly stories of ivory-raiding, slave-running and torture, such as had
not disturbed the quiet of the ape-man’s savage jungle since the days of
Sheik Amor Ben Khatour, and there came other tales, too, that caused
Tarzan of the Apes to pucker his brows in puzzlement and thought, and
then a month elapsed during which Tarzan heard no more of the rumors
from the west.



The war had reduced the resources of the Greystokes to but a meager
income. They had given practically all to the cause of the Allies, and
now what little had remained to them had been all but exhausted in the
rehabilitation of Tarzan’s African estate.

“It looks very much, Jane,” he said to his wife one night, “as though
another trip to Opar were on the books.”

“I dread to think of it. I do not want you to go,” she said. “You have
come away from that awful city twice, but barely with your life. The
third time you may not be so fortunate. We have enough, John, to permit
us to live here in comfort and in happiness. Why jeopardize those two
things which are greater than all wealth in another attempt to raid the
treasure vaults?”

“There is no danger, Jane,” he assured her. “The last time Werper dogged
my footsteps, and between him and the earthquake I was nearly done for.
But there is no chance of any such combination of circumstances
thwarting me again.”

“You will not go alone, John?” she asked. “You will take Korak with
you?”

“No,” he said, “I shall not take him. He must remain here with you, for
really my long absences are more dangerous to you than to me. I shall
take fifty of the Waziri, as porters, to carry the gold, and thus we
should be able to bring out enough to last us for a long time.”

“And Jad-bal-ja,” she asked, “shall you take him?”

“No, he had better remain here; Korak can look after him and take him
out for a hunt occasionally. I am going to travel light and fast and it
would be too hard a trip for him—lions don’t care to move around much
in the hot sun, and as we shall travel mostly by day I doubt if
Jad-bal-ja would last long.”

And so it befell that Tarzan of the Apes set out once more upon the long
trail that leads to Opar. Behind him marched fifty giant Waziri, the
pick of the warlike tribe that had adopted Tarzan as its Chief. Upon the
veranda of the bungalow stood Jane and Korak waving their adieux, while
from the rear of the building there came to the ape-man’s ears the
rumbling roar of Jad-bal-ja, the golden lion. And as they marched away
the voice of Numa accompanied them out upon the rolling plain, until at
last it trailed off to nothingness in the distance.

His speed determined by that of the slowest of the blacks, Tarzan made
but comparatively rapid progress. Opar lay a good twenty-five days’ trek
from the farm for men traveling light, as were these, but upon the
return journey, laden as they would be with the ingots of gold, their
progress would be slower. And because of this the ape-man had allotted
two months for the venture. His safari, consisting of seasoned warriors
only, permitted of really rapid progress. They carried no supplies, for
they were all hunters and were moving through a country in which game
was abundant—no need then for burdening themselves with the cumbersome
impedimenta of white huntsmen.

A thorn boma and a few leaves furnished their shelter for the night,
while spears and arrows and the powers of their great white chief
insured that their bellies would never go empty. With the picked men
that he had brought with him Tarzan expected to make the trip to Opar in
twenty-one days, though had he been traveling alone he would have moved
two or three times as fast, since, when Tarzan elected to travel with
speed, he fairly flew through the jungle, equally at home in it by day
or by night and practically tireless.

It was a mid-afternoon the third week of the march that Tarzan, ranging
far ahead of his blacks in search of game, came suddenly upon the
carcass of Bara, the deer, a feathered arrow protruding from its flank.
It was evident that Bara had been wounded at some little distance from
where it had lain down to die, for the location of the missile indicated
that the wound could not have caused immediate death. But what
particularly caught the attention of the ape-man, even before he had
come close enough to make a minute examination, was the design of the
arrow, and immediately he withdrew it from the body of the deer he knew
it for what it was, and was filled with such wonderment as might come to
you or to me were we to see a native Swazi headdress upon Broadway or
the Strand, for the arrow was precisely such as one may purchase in most
any sporting-goods house in any large city of the world—such an arrow
as is sold and used for archery practice in the parks and suburbs.
Nothing could have been more incongruous than this silly toy in the
heart of savage Africa, and yet that it had done its work effectively
was evident by the dead body of Bara, though the ape-man guessed that
the shaft had been sped by no practiced, savage hand.

Tarzan’s curiosity was aroused and also his inherent jungle caution. One
must know his jungle well to survive long the jungle, and if one would
know it well he must let no unusual occurrence or circumstance go
unexplained. And so it was that Tarzan set out upon the back track of
Bara for the purpose of ascertaining, if possible, the nature of Bara’s
slayer. The bloody spoor was easily followed and the ape-man wondered
why it was that the hunter had not tracked and overtaken his quarry,
which had evidently been dead since the previous day. He found that Bara
had traveled far, and the sun was already low in the west before Tarzan
came upon the first indications of the slayer of the animal. These were
in the nature of footprints that filled him with quite as much surprise
as had the arrow. He examined them carefully, and, stooping low, even
sniffed at them with his sensitive nostrils. Improbable, nay impossible
though it seemed, the naked footprints were those of _a white man_—a
large man, probably as large as Tarzan himself. As the foster-son of
Kala stood gazing upon the spoor of the mysterious stranger he ran the
fingers of one hand through his thick, black hair in a characteristic
gesture indicative of deep puzzlement.

What naked white man could there be in Tarzan’s jungle who slew Tarzan’s
game with the pretty arrow of an archery club? It was incredible that
there should be such a one, and yet there recurred to the ape-man’s mind
the vague rumors that he had heard weeks before. Determined to solve the
mystery he set out now upon the trail of the stranger—an erratic trail
which wound about through the jungle, apparently aimlessly, prompted,
Tarzan guessed, by the ignorance of an inexperienced hunter. But night
fell before he had arrived at a solution of the riddle, and it was pitch
dark as the ape-man turned his steps toward camp.

He knew that his Waziri would be expecting meat and it was not Tarzan’s
intention to disappoint them, though he then discovered that he was not
the only carnivore hunting the district that night. The coughing grunt
of a lion close by apprised him of it first, and then, from the
distance, the deep roar of another. But of what moment was it to the
ape-man that others hunted? It would not be the first time that he had
pitted his cunning, his strength, and his agility against the other
hunters of his savage world—both man and beast.

And so it was that Tarzan made his kill at last, snatching it almost
from under the nose of a disappointed and infuriated lion—a fat
antelope that the latter had marked as his own. Throwing his kill to his
shoulder almost in the path of the charging Numa, the ape-man swung
lightly to the lower terraces and with a taunting laugh for the
infuriated cat, vanished noiselessly into the night.

He found the camp and his hungry Waziri without trouble, and so great
was their faith in him that they not for a moment doubted but that he
would return with meat for them.

Early the following morning Tarzan set out again toward Opar, and
directing his Waziri to continue the march in the most direct way, he
left them that he might pursue further his investigations of the
mysterious presence in his jungle that the arrow and the footsteps had
apprised him of. Coming again to the spot at which darkness had forced
him to abandon his investigations, he took up the spoor of the stranger.
Nor had he followed it far before he came upon further evidence of the
presence of this new and malign personality—stretched before him in the
trail was the body of a giant ape, one of the tribe of great anthropoids
among whom Tarzan had been raised. Protruding from the hairy abdomen of
the Mangani was another of the machine-made arrows of civilization. The
ape-man’s eyes narrowed and a scowl darkened his brow. Who was this who
dared invade his sacred preserves and slaughter thus ruthlessly Tarzan’s
people?

A low growl rumbled in the throat of the ape-man. Sloughed with the
habiliments of civilization was the thin veneer of civilization that
Tarzan wore among white men. No English lord was this who looked upon
the corpse of his hairy cousin, but another jungle beast in whose breast
raged the unquenchable fire of suspicion and hatred for the man-thing
that is the heritage of the jungle-bred. A beast of prey viewed the
bloody work of ruthless man. Nor was there in the consciousness of
Tarzan any acknowledgment of his blood relationship to the killer.

Realizing that the trail had been made upon the second day before,
Tarzan hastened on in pursuit of the slayer. There was no doubt in his
mind but that plain murder had been committed, for he was sufficiently
familiar with the traits of the Mangani to know that none of them would
provoke assault unless driven to it.

Tarzan was traveling up wind, and some half-hour after he had discovered
the body of the ape his keen nostrils caught the scent spoor of others
of its kind. Knowing the timidity of these fierce denizens of the jungle
he moved forward now with great wariness, lest, warned of his approach,
they take flight before they were aware of his identity. He did not see
them often, yet he knew that there were always those among them who
recalled him, and that through these he could always establish amicable
relations with the balance of the tribe.

Owing to the denseness of the undergrowth Tarzan chose the middle
terraces for his advance, and here, swinging freely and swiftly among
the leafy boughs, he came presently upon the giant anthropoids. There
were about twenty of them in the band, and they were engaged, in a
little natural clearing, in their never-ending search for caterpillars
and beetles, which formed important items in the diet of the Mangani.

A faint smile overspread the ape-man’s face as he paused upon a great
branch, himself hidden by the leafy foliage about him, and watched the
little band below him. Every action, every movement of the great apes,
recalled vividly to Tarzan’s mind the long years of his childhood, when,
protected by the fierce mother-love of Kala, the she-ape, he had ranged
the jungle with the tribe of Kerchak. In the romping young, he saw again
Neeta and his other childhood playmates and in the adults all the great,
savage brutes he had feared in youth and conquered in manhood. The ways
of man may change but the ways of the ape are the same, yesterday, today
and forever.

He watched them in silence for some minutes. How glad they would be to
see him when they discovered his identity! For Tarzan of the Apes was
known the length and the breadth of the great jungle as the friend and
protector of the Mangani. At first they would growl at him and threaten
him, for they would not depend solely on either their eyes or their ears
for confirmation of his identity. Not until he had entered the clearing,
and bristling bulls with bared fighting fangs had circled him stiffly
until they had come close enough for their nostrils to verify the
evidence of their eyes and ears, would they finally accept him. Then
doubtless there would be great excitement for a few minutes, until,
following the instincts of the ape mind, their attention was weaned from
him by a blowing leaf, a caterpillar, or a bird’s egg, and then they
would move about their business, taking no further notice of him more
than of any other member of the tribe. But this would not come until
after each individual had smelled of him, and perhaps, pawed his flesh
with calloused hands.

Now it was that Tarzan made a friendly sound of greeting, and as the
apes looked up stepped from his concealment into plain view of them. “I
am Tarzan of the Apes,” he said, “mighty fighter, friend of the Mangani.
Tarzan comes in friendship to his people,” and with these words he
dropped lightly to the lush grass of the clearing.

Instantly pandemonium reigned. Screaming warnings, the shes raced with
the young for the opposite side of the clearing, while the bulls,
bristling and growling, faced the intruder.

“Come,” cried Tarzan, “do you not know me? I am Tarzan of the Apes,
friend of the Mangani, son of Kala, and king of the tribe of Kerchak.”

“We know you,” growled one of the old bulls; “yesterday we saw you when
you killed Gobu. Go away or we shall kill you.”

“I did not kill Gobu,” replied the ape-man. “I found his dead body
yesterday and I was following the spoor of his slayer, when I came upon
you.”

“We saw you,” repeated the old bull; “go away or we shall kill you. You
are no longer the friend of the Mangani.”

The ape-man stood with brows contracted in thought. It was evident that
these apes really believed that they had seen him kill their fellow.
What was the explanation? How could it be accounted for? Did the naked
footprints of the great white man whom he had been following mean more,
then, than he had guessed? Tarzan wondered. He raised his eyes and again
addressed the bulls.

“It was not I who killed Gobu,” he insisted. “Many of you have known me
all your lives. You know that only in fair fight, as one bull fights
another, have I ever killed a Mangani. You know that, of all the jungle
people, the Mangani are my best friends, and that Tarzan of the Apes is
the best friend the Mangani have. How, then, could I slay one of my own
people?”

“We only know,” replied the old bull, “that we saw you kill Gobu. With
our own eyes we saw you kill him. Go away quickly, therefore, or we
shall kill you. Mighty fighter is Tarzan of the Apes, but mightier even
than he are all the great bulls of Pagth. I am Pagth, king of the tribe
of Pagth. Go away before we kill you.”

Tarzan tried to reason with them but they would not listen, so confident
were they that it was he who had slain their fellow, the bull Gobu.
Finally, rather than chance a quarrel in which some of them must
inevitably be killed, he turned sorrowfully away. But more than ever,
now, was he determined to seek out the slayer of Gobu that he might
demand an accounting of one who dared thus invade his life-long domain.

Tarzan trailed the spoor until it mingled with the tracks of many
men—barefooted blacks, mostly, but among them the footprints of booted
white men, and once he saw the footprints of a woman or a child, which,
he could not tell. The trail led apparently toward the rocky hills which
protected the barren valley of Opar.

Forgetful now of his original mission and imbued only with a savage
desire to wrest from the interlopers a full accounting for their
presence in the jungle, and to mete out to the slayer of Gobu his just
deserts, Tarzan forged ahead upon the now broad and well-marked trail of
the considerable party which could not now be much more than a
half-day’s march ahead of him, which meant that they were doubtless now
already upon the rim of the valley of Opar, if this was their ultimate
destination. And what other they could have in view Tarzan could not
imagine.

He had always kept closely to himself the location of Opar. In so far as
he knew no white person other than Jane, and their son, Korak, knew of
the location of the forgotten city of the ancient Atlantians. Yet what
else could have drawn these white men, with so large a party, into the
savage, unexplored wilderness which hemmed Opar upon all sides?

Such were the thoughts that occupied Tarzan’s mind as he followed
swiftly the trail that led toward Opar. Darkness fell, but so fresh was
the spoor that the ape-man could follow it by scent even when he could
not see the imprints upon the ground, and presently, in the distance, he
saw the light of a camp ahead of him.




[Illustration: Before him was the body of a giant anthropoid]




                               CHAPTER V
                            THE FATAL DROPS


AT home, the life in the bungalow and at the farm followed its usual
routine as it had before the departure of Tarzan. Korak, sometimes on
foot and sometimes on horseback, followed the activities of the farm
hands and the herders, sometimes alone, but more often in company with
the white foreman, Jervis, and often, especially when they rode, Jane
accompanied them.

The golden lion Korak exercised upon a leash, since he was not at all
confident of his powers of control over the beast, and feared lest, in
the absence of his master, Jad-bal-ja might take to the forest and
revert to his natural savage state. Such a lion, abroad in the jungle,
would be a distinct menace to human life, for Jad-bal-ja, reared among
men, lacked that natural timidity of men that is so marked a trait of
all wild beasts. Trained as he had been to make his kill at the throat
of a human effigy, it required no considerable powers of imagination
upon the part of Korak to visualize what might occur should the golden
lion, loosed from all restraint, be thrown upon his own resources in the
surrounding jungle.

It was during the first week of Tarzan’s absence that a runner from
Nairobi brought a cable message to Lady Greystoke, announcing the
serious illness of her father in London. Mother and son discussed the
situation. It would be five or six weeks before Tarzan could return,
even if they sent a runner after him, and, were Jane to await him, there
would be little likelihood of her reaching her father in time. Even
should she depart at once, there seemed only a faint hope that she would
arrive early enough to see him alive. It was decided, therefore, that
she should set out immediately, Korak accompanying her as far as
Nairobi, and then returning to the ranch and resuming its general
supervision until his father’s return.

It is a long trek from the Greystoke estate to Nairobi, and Korak had
not yet returned when, about three weeks after Tarzan’s departure, a
black, whose duty it was to feed and care for Jad-bal-ja, carelessly
left the door of the cage unfastened while he was cleaning it. The
golden lion paced back and forth while the black wielded his broom
within the cage. They were old friends, and the Waziri felt no fear of
the great lion, with the result that his back was as often turned to him
as not. The black was working in the far corner of the cage when
Jad-bal-ja paused a moment at the door at the opposite end. The beast
saw that the gate hung slightly ajar upon its hinges. Silently he raised
a great padded paw and inserted it in the opening—a slight pull and the
gate swung in. Instantly the golden lion inserted his snout in the
widened aperture, and as he swung the barrier aside the horrified black
looked up to see his charge drop softly to the ground outside.

“Stop, Jad-bal-ja! Stop!” screamed the frightened black, leaping after
him. But the golden lion only increased his pace, and leaping the fence,
loped off in the direction of the forest.

The black pursued him with brandishing broom, emitting loud yells that
brought the inmates of the Waziri huts into the open, where they joined
their fellow in pursuit of the lion. Across the rolling plains they
followed him, but as well have sought to snare the elusive
will-o’-the-wisp as this swift and wary fugitive, who heeded neither
their blandishments nor their threats. And so it was that they saw the
golden lion disappear into the primeval forest and, though they searched
diligently until almost dark, they were forced at length to give up
their quest and return crestfallen to the farm.

“Ah,” cried the unhappy black, who had been responsible for the escape
of Jad-bal-ja, “what will the Big Bwana say to me, what will he do to me
when he finds that I have permitted the golden lion to get away!”

“You will be banished from the bungalow for a long time, Keewazi,” old
Muviro assured him. “And doubtless you will be sent to the grazing
ground far to the east to guard the herd there, where you will have
plenty of lions for company, though they will not be as friendly as was
Jad-bal-ja. It is not half what you deserve, and were the heart of the
Big Bwana not filled with love for his black children—were he like
other white Bwanas old Muviro has seen—you would be lashed until you
could not stand, perhaps until you died.”

“I am a man,” replied Keewazi. “I am a warrior and a Waziri. Whatever
punishment the Big Bwana inflicts I will accept as a man should.”

It was that same night that Tarzan approached the camp-fires of the
strange party he had been tracking. Unseen by them, he halted in the
foliage of a tree directly in the center of their camp, which was
surrounded by an enormous thorn boma, and brilliantly lighted by
numerous fires which blacks were diligently feeding with branches from
an enormous pile of firewood that they had evidently gathered earlier in
the day for this purpose. Near the center of the camp were several
tents, and before one, in the light of a fire, sat four white men. Two
of them were great, bull-necked, red-faced fellows, apparently
Englishmen of the lower class, the third appeared to be a short, fat,
German Jew, while the fourth was a tall, slender, handsome fellow, with
dark, wavy brown hair and regular features. He and the German were most
meticulously garbed for Central African traveling, after the highly
idealized standard of motion pictures, in fact either one of them might
have stepped directly from a screening of the latest jungle thriller.
The young man was evidently not of English descent and Tarzan mentally
cataloged him, almost immediately, as a Slav. Shortly after Tarzan’s
arrival this one arose and entered one of the nearby tents, from which
Tarzan immediately heard the sound of voices in low conversation. He
could not distinguish the words, but the tones of one seemed quite
distinctly feminine. The three remaining at the fire were carrying on a
desultory conversation, when suddenly from near at hand beyond the boma
wall, a lion’s roar broke the silence of the jungle.

With a startled shriek the Jew leaped to his feet, so suddenly that he
cleared the ground a good foot, and then, stepping backward, he lost his
balance, tripped over his camp-stool, and sprawled upon his back.

“My Gord, Adolph!” roared one of his companions. “If you do that again,
damn me if I don’t break your neck. ’Ere we are, and that’s that.”

“Blime if ’e aint worse’n a bloomin’ lion,” growled the other.

The Jew crawled to his feet. “_Mein Gott!_” he cried, his voice
quavering, “I t’ought sure he vas coming over the fence. S’elp me if I
ever get out of diss, neffer again—not for all der gold in Africa vould
I go t’rough vat I haf been t’rough dese past t’ree mont’s. _Oi! Oi!_
ven I t’ink of it, _Oi! Oi!_ Lions, und leopards, und rhinoceroses und
hippopotamuses, _Oi! Oi!_”

His companions laughed. “Dick and I tells you right along from the
beginning that you ’adn’t oughter come into the interior,” said one of
them.

“But for vy I buy all dese clo’s?” wailed the German. “_Mein Gott_, dis
suit, it stands me tventy guineas, vot I stand in. Ach, had I know
somet’ing, vun guinea vould have bought me my whole wardrobe—tventy
guineas for dis und no vun to see it but niggers und lions.”

“And you look like ’ell in it, besides,” commented one of his friends.

“Und look at it, it’s all dirty and torn. How should I know it I spoil
dis suit? Mit mine own eyes I see it at der Princess Teayter, how der
hero spend t’ree mont’s in Africa hunting lions und killing cannibals,
und ven he comes ouid he hasn’t even got a grease spot on his pants—how
should I know it Africa was so dirty und full of thorns?”

It was at this point that Tarzan of the Apes elected to drop quietly
into the circle of firelight before them. The two Englishmen leaped to
their feet, quite evidently startled, and the Jew turned and took a half
step as though in flight, but immediately his eyes rested upon the
ape-man he halted, a look of relief supplanting that of terror which had
overspread his countenance, as Tarzan had dropped upon them apparently
from the heavens.

“_Mein Gott_, Esteban,” shrilled the German, “vy you come back so soon,
and for vy you come back like dot, sudden—don’t you suppose ve got
nerves?”

Tarzan was angry, angry at these raw intruders, who dared enter without
his permission, the wide domain in which he kept peace and order. When
Tarzan was angry there flamed upon his forehead the scar that Bolgani,
the gorilla, had placed there upon that long-gone day when the boy
Tarzan had met the great beast in mortal combat, and first learned the
true value of his father’s hunting knife—the knife that had placed him,
the comparatively weak little Tarmangani, upon an even footing with the
great beasts of the jungle.

His gray eyes were narrowed, his voice came cold and level as he
addressed them. “Who are you,” he demanded, “who dare thus invade the
country of the Waziri, the land of Tarzan, without permission from the
Lord of the Jungle?”

“Where do you get that stuff, Esteban,” demanded one of the Englishmen,
“and wat in ’ell are you doin’ back ’ere alone and so soon? Where are
your porters, where is the bloomin’ gold?”

The ape-man eyed the speaker in silence for a moment. “I am Tarzan of
the Apes,” he said. “I do not know what you are talking about. I only,
know that I come in search of him who slew Gobu, the great ape; him who
slew Bara, the deer, without my permission.”

“Oh, ’ell,” exploded the other Englishman, “stow the guff, Esteban—if
you’re tryin’ for to be funny we don’t see the joke, ’ere we are, and
that’s that.”

Inside the tent, which the fourth white man had entered while Tarzan was
watching the camp from his hiding place in the tree above, a woman,
evidently suddenly stirred by terror, touched the arm of her companion
frantically, and pointed toward the tall, almost naked figure of the
ape-man as he stood revealed in the full light of the beast fires. “God,
Carl,” she whispered, in trembling tones, “look!”

“What’s wrong, Flora?” inquired her companion. “I see only Esteban.”

“It is not Esteban,” hissed the girl. “It is Lord Greystoke himself—it
is Tarzan of the Apes!”

“You are mad, Flora,” replied the man, “it cannot be he.”

“It is he, though,” she insisted. “Do you suppose that I do not know
him? Did I not work in his town house for years? Did I not see him
nearly every day? Do you suppose that I do not know Tarzan of the Apes?
Look at that red scar flaming on his forehead—I have heard the story of
that scar and I have seen it burn scarlet when he was aroused to anger.
It is scarlet now, and Tarzan of the Apes is angry.”

“Well, suppose it _is_ Tarzan of the Apes, what can he do?”

“You do not know him,” replied the girl. “You do not guess the
tremendous power he wields here—the power of life and death over man
and beast. If he knew our mission here not one of us would ever reach
the coast alive. The very fact that he is here now makes me believe that
he may have discovered our purpose, and if he has, God help
us—unless—unless——”

“Unless what?” demanded the man.

The girl was silent in thought for a moment. “There is only one way,”
she said finally. “We dare not kill him. His savage blacks would learn
of it, and no power on earth could save us then. There is a way, though,
if we act quickly.” She turned and searched for a moment in one of her
bags, and presently she handed the man a small bottle, containing
liquid. “Go out and talk to him,” she said, “make friends with him. Lie
to him. Tell him anything. Promise anything. But get on friendly enough
terms with him so that you can offer him coffee. He does not drink wine
or anything with alcohol in it, but I know that he likes coffee. I have
often served it to him in his room late at night upon his return from
the theater or a ball. Get him to drink coffee and then you will know
what to do with this.” And she indicated the bottle which the man still
held in his hand.

Kraski nodded. “I understand,” he said, and, turning, left the tent.

He had taken but a step when the girl recalled him. “Do not let him see
me. Do not let him guess that I am here or that you know me.”

The man nodded and left her. Approaching the tense figures before the
fire he greeted Tarzan with a pleasant smile and a cheery word.

“Welcome,” he said, “we are always glad to see a stranger in our camp.
Sit down. Hand the gentleman a stool, John,” he said to Peebles.

The ape-man eyed Kraski as he had eyed the others. There was no
answering friendly light in his eyes responding to the Russian’s
greeting.

“I have been trying to find out what your party is doing here,” he said
sharply to the Russian, “but they still insist that I am someone whom I
am not. They are either fools or knaves, and I intend to find out which,
and deal with them accordingly.”

“Come, come,” cried Kraski, soothingly. “There must be some mistake, I
am sure. But tell me, who are you?”

“I am Tarzan of the Apes,” replied the ape-man. “No hunters enter this
part of Africa without my permission. That fact is so well known that
there is no chance of your having passed the coast without having been
so advised. I seek an explanation, and that quickly.”

“Ah, you are Tarzan of the Apes,” exclaimed Kraski. “Fortunate indeed
are we, for now may we be set straight upon our way, and escape from our
frightful dilemma is assured. We are lost, sir, inextricably lost, due
to the ignorance or knavery of our guide, who deserted us several weeks
ago. Surely we knew of you; who does not know of Tarzan of the Apes? But
it was not our intention to cross the boundaries of your territory. We
were searching farther south for specimens of the fauna of the district,
which our good friend and employer, here, Mr. Adolph Bluber, is
collecting at great expense for presentation to a museum in his home
city in America. Now I am sure that you can tell us where we are and
direct us upon our proper course.”

Peebles, Throck, and Bluber stood fascinated by Kraski’s glib lies, but
it was the German Jew who first rose to the occasion. Too thick were the
skulls of the English pugs to grasp quickly the clever ruse of the
Russian.

“Vy yes,” said the oily Bluber, rubbing his palms together, “dot iss it,
yust vot I vas going to tell you.”

Tarzan turned sharply upon him. “Then what was all this talk about
Esteban?” he asked. “Was it not by that name that these others addressed
me?”

“Ah,” cried Bluber, “John will haf his leetle joke. He iss ignorant of
Africa; he has neffer been here before. He t’ought perhaps dat you vere
a native. John he calls all der natives Esteban, und he has great jokes
by himself mit dem, because he knows dey cannot onderstand vot he says.
Hey John, iss it not so, vot it iss I say?” But the shrewd Bluber did
not wait for John to reply. “You see,” he went on, “ve are lost, und you
take us ouid mit dis jungle, ve pay you anyt’ing—you name your own
price.”

The ape-man only half believed him, yet he was somewhat mollified by
their evidently friendly intentions. Perhaps after all they were telling
him a half-truth and had, really, wandered into his territory
unwittingly. That, however, he would find out definitely from their
native carriers, from whom his own Waziri would wean the truth. But the
matter of his having been mistaken for Esteban still piqued his
curiosity, also he was still desirous of learning the identity of the
slayer of Gobu, the great ape.

“Please sit down,” urged Kraski. “We were about to have coffee and we
should be delighted to have you join us. We meant no wrong in coming
here, and I can assure you that we will gladly and willingly make full
amends to you, or to whomever else we may have unintentionally wronged.”

To take coffee with these men would do no harm. Perhaps he had wronged
them, but however that might be a cup of their coffee would place no
great obligation upon him. Flora had been right in her assertion that if
Tarzan of the Apes had any weakness whatsoever it was for an occasional
cup of black coffee late at night. He did not accept the proffered
camp-stool, but squatted, ape-fashion, before them, the flickering light
of the beast fires playing upon his bronzed hide and bringing into
relief the gracefully contoured muscles of his godlike frame. Not as the
muscles of the blacksmith or the professional strong man were the
muscles of Tarzan of the Apes, but rather those of Mercury or Apollo, so
symmetrically balanced were their proportions, suggesting only the great
strength that lay in them. Trained to speed and agility were they as
well as to strength, and thus, clothing as they did his giant frame,
they imparted to him the appearance of a demi-god.

Throck, Peebles, and Bluber sat watching him in spellbound fascination,
while Kraski walked over to the cook fire to arrange for the coffee. The
two Englishmen were as yet only half awakened to the fact that they had
mistaken this newcomer for another, and as it was, Peebles still
scratched his head and grumbled to himself in inarticulate half-denial
of Kraski’s assumption of the new identity of Tarzan. Bluber was
inwardly terror-stricken. His keener intelligence had quickly grasped
the truth of Kraski’s recognition of the man for what he was rather than
for what Peebles and Throck thought him to be, and, as Bluber knew
nothing of Flora’s plan, he was in quite a state of funk as he tried to
visualize the outcome of Tarzan’s discovery of them at the very
threshold of Opar. He did not realize, as did Flora, that their very
lives were in danger—that it was Tarzan of the Apes, a beast of the
jungle, with whom they had to deal, and not John Clayton, Lord
Greystoke, an English peer. Rather was Bluber considering the two
thousand pounds that they stood to lose through this deplorable
termination of their expedition, for he was sufficiently familiar with
the reputation of the ape-man to know that they would never be permitted
to take with them the gold that Esteban was very likely, at this moment,
pilfering from the vaults of Opar. Really Bluber was almost upon the
verge of tears when Kraski returned with the coffee, which he brought
himself.

From the dark shadows of the tent’s interior Flora Hawkes looked
nervously out upon the scene before her. She was terrified at the
possibility of discovery by her former employer, for she had been a maid
in the Greystokes’ London town house as well as at the African bungalow
and knew that Lord Greystoke would recognize her instantly should he
chance to see her. She entertained for him, now, in his jungle haunts, a
fear that was possibly greater than Tarzan’s true character warranted,
but none the less real was it to the girl whose guilty conscience
conjured all sorts of possible punishments for her disloyalty to those
who had always treated her with uniform kindliness and consideration.

Constant dreaming of the fabulous wealth of the treasure vaults of Opar,
concerning which she had heard so much in detail from the conversations
of the Greystokes, had aroused within her naturally crafty and
unscrupulous mind a desire for possession, and in consequence thereof
she had slowly visualized a scheme whereby she might loot the treasure
vaults of a sufficient number of the golden ingots to make her
independently wealthy for life. The entire plan had been hers. She had
at first interested Kraski, who had in turn enlisted the coöperation of
the two Englishmen and Bluber, and these four had raised the necessary
money to defray the cost of the expedition. It had been Flora who had
searched for a type of man who might successfully impersonate Tarzan in
his own jungle, and she had found Esteban Miranda, a handsome, powerful,
and unscrupulous Spaniard, whose histrionic ability aided by the art of
make-up, of which he was a past master, permitted him to almost
faultlessly impersonate the character they desired him to portray, in so
far, as least, as outward appearances were concerned.

The Spaniard was not only powerful and active, but physically courageous
as well, and since he had shaved his beard and donned the jungle
habiliments of a Tarzan, he had lost no opportunity for emulating the
ape-man in every way that lay within his ability. Of jungle craft he had
none of course, and personal combats with the more savage jungle beasts
caution prompted him to eschew, but he hunted the lesser game with spear
and with arrow and practiced continually with the grass rope that was a
part of his make-up.

And now Flora Hawkes saw all her well-laid plans upon the verge of
destruction. She trembled as she watched the men before the fire, for
her fear of Tarzan was very real, and then she became tense with nervous
anticipation as she saw Kraski approaching the group with the coffee pot
in one hand and cups in the other. Kraski set the pot and the cups upon
the ground a little in the rear of Tarzan, and, as he filled the latter,
she saw him pour a portion of the contents of the bottle she had given
him into one of the cups. A cold sweat broke out upon her forehead as
Kraski lifted this cup and offered it to the ape-man. Would he take it?
Would he suspect? If he did suspect what horrible punishment would be
meted to them all for their temerity? She saw Kraski hand another cup to
Peebles, Throck, and Bluber, then return to the circle with the last one
for himself. As the Russian raised it before his face and bowed politely
to the ape-man, she saw the five men drink. The reaction which ensued
left her weak and spent. Turning, she collapsed upon her cot, and lay
there trembling, her face buried in her arm. And, outside, Tarzan of the
Apes drained his cup to the last drop.




                               CHAPTER VI
                          DEATH STEALS BEHIND


DURING the afternoon of the day that Tarzan discovered the camp of the
conspirators, a watcher upon the crumbling outer wall of the ruined city
of Opar descried a party of men moving downward into the valley from the
summit of the encircling cliff. Tarzan, Jane Clayton, and their black
Waziri were the only strangers that the denizens of Opar had ever seen
within their valley during the lifetime of the oldest among them, and
only in half-forgotten legends of a by-gone past was there any
suggestion that strangers other than these had ever visited Opar. Yet
from time immemorial a guard had always remained upon the summit of the
outer wall. Now a single knurled and crippled man-like creature was all
that recalled the numerous, lithe warriors of lost Atlantis. For down
through the long ages the race had deteriorated and finally, through
occasional mating with the great apes, the men had become the beast-like
things of modern Opar. Strange and inexplicable had been the providence
of nature that had confined this deterioration almost solely to the
males, leaving the females straight, well-formed, often of comely and
even beautiful features, a condition that might be largely attributable
to the fact that female infants possessing ape-like characteristics were
immediately destroyed, while, on the other hand, boy babies who
possessed purely human attributes were also done away with.

Typical indeed of the male inhabitants of Opar was the lone watcher upon
the outer city wall, a short, stocky man with matted hair and beard, his
tangled locks growing low upon a low, receding forehead; small,
close-set eyes and fang-like teeth bore evidence of his simian ancestry,
as did his short, crooked legs and long, muscular ape-like arms, all
scantily hair-covered as was his torso.

As his wicked, blood-rimmed eyes watched the progress of the party
across the valley toward Opar, evidences of his growing excitement were
manifested in the increased rapidity of his breathing, and low, almost
inaudible growls that issued from his throat. The strangers were too far
distant to be recognizable only as human beings, and their number to be
roughly approximated as between two and three score. Having assured
himself of these two facts the watcher descended from the outer wall,
crossed the space between it and the inner wall, through which he
passed, and at a rapid trot crossed the broad avenue beyond and
disappeared within the crumbling but still magnificent temple beyond.

Cadj, the High Priest of Opar, squatted beneath the shade of the giant
trees which now overgrew what had once been one of the gardens of the
ancient temple. With him were a dozen members of the lesser priesthood,
the intimate cronies of the High Priest, who were startled by the sudden
advent of one of the inferior members of the clan of Opar. The fellow
hurried breathlessly to Cadj.

“Cadj,” he cried, “strange men descend upon Opar! From the northwest
they have come into the valley from beyond the barrier cliffs—fifty of
them at least, perhaps half again that number. I saw them as I watched
from the summit of the outer wall, but further than they are men I
cannot say, for they are still a great distance away. Not since the
great Tarmangani came among us last have there been strangers within
Opar.”

“It has been many moons since the great Tarmangani who called himself
Tarzan of the Apes was among us,” said Cadj. “He promised us to return
before the rain to see that no harm had befallen La, but he did not come
back and La has always insisted that he is dead. Have you told any other
of what you have seen?” he demanded, turning suddenly upon the
messenger.

“No,” replied the latter.

“Good!” exclaimed Cadj. “Come, we will all go to the outer wall and see
who it is who dares enter forbidden Opar, and let no one breathe a word
of what Blagh has told us until I give permission.”

“The word of Cadj is law until La speaks,” murmured one of the priests.

Cadj turned a scowling face upon the speaker. “I am High Priest of
Opar,” he growled. “Who dares disobey me?”

“But La is High Priestess,” said one, “and the High Priestess is the
queen of Opar.”

“But the High Priest can offer whom he will as sacrifice in the Chamber
of the Dead or to the Flaming God,” Cadj reminded the other meaningly.

“We shall keep silence, Cadj,” replied the priest, cringing.

“Good!” growled the High Priest and led the way from the garden through
the corridors of the temple back toward the outer wall of Opar. From
here they watched the approaching party that was in plain view of them,
far out across the valley. The watchers conversed in low gutturals in
the language of the great apes, interspersed with which were occasional
words and phrases of a strange tongue that were doubtless corrupted
forms of the ancient language of Atlantis handed down through countless
generations from their human progenitors—that now extinct race whose
cities and civilization lie buried deep beneath the tossing waves of the
Atlantic, and whose adventurous spirit had, in remote ages, caused them
to penetrate into the heart of Africa in search of gold and to build
there, in duplication of their far home cities, the magnificent city of
Opar.

As Cadj and his followers watched from beneath shaggy brows the
strangers plodding laboriously beneath the now declining equatorial sun
across the rocky, barren valley, a gray little monkey eyed them from
amidst the foliage of one of the giant trees that had forced its way
through the pavement of the ancient avenue behind them. A solemn,
sad-faced little monkey it was, but like all his kind overcome by
curiosity, and finally to such an extent that his fear of the fierce
males of Opar was so considerably overcome that he at last swung lightly
from the tree to the pavement, made his way through the inner wall and
up the inside of the outer wall to a position in their rear where he
could hide behind one of the massive granite blocks of the crumbling
wall in comparative safety from detection, the while he might overhear
the conversation of the Oparians, all of which that was carried on in
the language of the great apes he could understand perfectly.

The afternoon was drawing to a close before the slowly moving company
approaching Opar was close enough for individuals to be recognizable in
any way, and then presently one of the younger priests exclaimed
excitedly:

“It is he, Cadj. It is the great Tarmangani who calls himself Tarzan of
the Apes. I can see him plainly; the others are all black men. He is
urging them on, prodding them with his spear. They act as though they
were afraid and very tired, but he is forcing them forward.”

“You are sure,” demanded Cadj, “you are sure that it is Tarzan of the
Apes?”

“I am positive,” replied the speaker, and then another of the priests
joined his assurances to that of his fellow. At last they were close
enough so that Cadj himself, whose eyesight was not as good as that of
the younger members of the company, realized that it was indeed Tarzan
of the Apes who was returning to Opar. The High Priest scowled angrily
in thought. Suddenly he turned upon the others.

“He must not come,” he cried; “he must not enter Opar. Hasten and fetch
a hundred fighting men. We will meet them as they come through the outer
wall and slay them one by one.”

“But La,” cried he who had aroused Cadj’s anger in the garden, “I
distinctly recall that La offered the friendship of Opar to Tarzan of
the Apes upon that time, many moons ago, that he saved her from the
tusks of infuriated Tantor.”

“Silence,” growled Cadj, “he shall not enter; we shall slay them all,
though we need not know their identity until it is too late. Do you
understand? And know, too, that whosoever attempts to thwart my purpose
shall die—and he die not as a sacrifice, he shall die at my hands, but
die he shall. You hear me?” And he pointed an unclean finger at the
trembling priest.

Manu, the monkey, hearing all this, was almost bursting with excitement.
He knew Tarzan of the Apes—as all the migratory monkeys the length and
breadth of Africa knew him—he knew him for a friend and protector. To
Manu the males of Opar were neither beast, nor man, nor friend. He knew
them as cruel and surly creatures who ate the flesh of his kind, and he
hated them accordingly. He was therefore greatly exercised at the plot
that he had heard discussed which was aimed at the life of the great
Tarmangani. He scratched his little gray head, and the root of his tail,
and his belly, as he attempted to mentally digest what he had heard, and
bring forth from the dim recesses of his little brain a plan to foil the
priests and save Tarzan of the Apes. He made grotesque grimaces that
were aimed at the unsuspecting Cadj and his followers, but which failed
to perturb them, possibly because a huge granite block hid the little
monkey from them. This was quite the most momentous thing that had
occurred in the life of Manu. He wanted to jump up and down and dance
and screech and jabber—to scold and threaten the hated Oparians, but
something told him that nothing would be gained by this, other than,
perhaps, to launch in his direction a shower of granite missiles, which
the priests knew only too well how to throw with accuracy. Now Manu is
not a deep thinker, but upon this occasion he quite outdid himself, and
managed to concentrate his mind upon the thing at hand rather than
permit its being distracted by each falling leaf or buzzing insect. He
even permitted a succulent caterpillar to crawl within his reach and out
again with impunity.

Just before darkness fell, Cadj saw a little gray monkey disappear over
the summit of the outer wall fifty paces from where he crouched with his
fellows, waiting for the coming of the fighting men. But so numerous
were the monkeys about the ruins of Opar that the occurrence left Cadj’s
mind almost as quickly as the monkey disappeared from his view, and in
the gathering gloom he did not see the little gray figure scampering off
across the valley toward the band of intruders who now appeared to have
stopped to rest at the foot of a large kopje that stood alone out in the
valley, about a mile from the city.

Little Manu was very much afraid out there alone in the growing dusk,
and he scampered very fast with his tail bowed up and out behind him.
All the time he cast affrighted glances to the right and left. The
moment he reached the kopje he scampered up its face as fast as he
could. It was really a huge, precipitous granite rock with almost
perpendicular sides, but sufficiently weather-worn to make its ascent
easy to little Manu. He paused a moment at the summit to get his breath
and still the beatings of his frightened little heart, and then he made
his way around to a point where he could look down upon the party
beneath.

There, indeed, was the great Tarmangani Tarzan, and with him were some
fifty Gomangani. The latter were splicing together a number of long,
straight poles, which they had laid upon the ground in two parallel
lines. Across these two, at intervals of a foot or more, they were
lashing smaller straight branches about eighteen inches in length, the
whole forming a crude but substantial ladder. The purpose of all this
Manu, of course, did not understand, nor did he know that it had been
evolved from the fertile brain of Flora Hawkes as a means of scaling the
precipitous kopje, at the summit of which lay the outer entrance to the
treasure vaults of Opar. Nor did Manu know that the party had no
intention of entering the city of Opar and were therefore in no danger
of becoming victims of Cadj’s hidden assassins. To him, the danger to
Tarzan of the Apes was very real, and so, having regained his breath, he
lost no time in delivering his warning to the friend of his people.

“Tarzan,” he cried, in the language that was common to both.

The white man and the blacks looked up at the sound of his chattering
voice.

“It is Manu, Tarzan,” continued the little monkey, “who has come to tell
you not to go to Opar. Cadj and his people await within the outer wall
to slay you.”

The blacks, having discovered that the author of the disturbance was
nothing but a little gray monkey, returned immediately to their work,
while the white man similarly ignored his words of warning. Manu was not
surprised at the lack of interest displayed by the blacks, for he knew
that they did not understand his language, but he could not comprehend
why Tarzan failed to pay any attention whatsoever to him. Again and
again he called Tarzan by name. Again and again he shrieked his warning
to the ape-man, but without eliciting any reply or any information that
the great Tarmangani had either heard or understood him. Manu was
mystified. What had occurred to render Tarzan of the Apes so indifferent
to the warnings of his old friend?

At last the little monkey gave it up and looked longingly back in the
direction of the trees within the walled city of Opar. It was now very
dark and he trembled at the thought of recrossing the valley, where he
knew enemies might prowl by night. He scratched his head and he hugged
his knees, then sat there whimpering, a very forlorn and unhappy little
ball of a monkey. But however uncomfortable he was upon the high kopje,
he was comparatively safe, and so he decided to remain there during the
night rather than venture the terrifying return trip through the
darkness. Thus it was that he saw the ladder completed and erected
against the side of the kopje; and when the moon rose at last and
lighted the scene, he saw Tarzan of the Apes urging his men to mount the
ladder. He had never seen Tarzan thus rough and cruel with the blacks
who accompanied him. Manu knew how ferocious the great Tarmangani could
be with an enemy, whether man or beast, but he had never seen him accord
such treatment to the blacks who were his friends.

One by one and with evident reluctance the blacks ascended the ladder,
continually urged forward to greater speed by the sharp spear of the
white man; when they had all ascended Tarzan followed, and Manu saw them
disappear apparently into the heart of the great rock.

It was only a short time later that they commenced to reappear, and now
each was burdened by two heavy objects which appeared to Manu to be very
similar to some of the smaller stone blocks that had been used in the
construction of the buildings in Opar. He saw them take the blocks to
the edge of the kopje and cast them over to the ground beneath, and when
the last of the blacks had emerged with his load and cast it to the
valley below, one by one the party descended the ladder to the foot of
the kopje. But this time Tarzan of the Apes went first. Then they
lowered the ladder and took it apart and laid its pieces close to the
foot of the cliff, after which they took up the blocks which they had
brought from the heart of the kopje, and following Tarzan, who set out
in the lead, they commenced to retrace their steps toward the rim of the
valley.

Manu would have been very much mystified had he been a man, but being
only a monkey he saw only what he saw without attempting to reason very
much about it. He knew that the ways of men were peculiar, and
oftentimes unaccountable. For example, the Gomangani who could not
travel through the jungle and the forest with the ease of any other of
the animals which frequented them, added to their difficulties by
loading themselves down with additional weights in the form of metal
anklets and armlets, with necklaces and girdles, and with skins of
animals, which did nothing more than impede their progress and render
life much more complicated than that which the untrammeled beasts
enjoyed. Manu, whenever he gave the matter a thought, congratulated
himself that he was not a man—he pitied the foolish, unreasonable
creatures.



Manu must have slept. He thought that he had only closed his eyes a
moment, but when he opened them the rosy light of dawn had overspread
the desolate valley. Just disappearing over the cliffs to the northeast
he could see the last of Tarzan’s party commencing the descent of the
barrier, then Manu turned his face toward Opar and prepared to descend
from the kopje, and scamper back to the safety of his trees within the
walls of Opar. But first he would reconnoiter—Sheeta, the panther,
might be still abroad, and so he scampered around the edge of the kopje
to a point where he could see the entire valley floor between himself
and Opar. And there it was that he saw again that which filled him with
greatest excitement. For, debouching from the ruined outer wall of Opar
was a large company of Opar’s frightful men—fully a hundred of them
Manu could have counted had Manu been able to count.

They seemed to be coming toward the kopje, and he sat and watched them
as they approached, deciding to defer his return to the city until after
the path was cleared of hated Oparians. It occurred to him that they
were coming after him, for the egotism of the lower animals is
inordinate. Because he was a monkey, the idea did not seem at all
ridiculous and so he hid behind a jutting rock, with only one little,
bright eye exposed to the enemy. He saw them come closer and he grew
very much excited, though he was not at all afraid, for he knew that if
they ascended one side of the kopje he could descend the other and be
half-way to Opar before they could possibly locate him again.

On and on they came, but they did not stop at the kopje—as a matter of
fact they did not come very close to it, but continued on beyond it.
Then it was that the truth of the matter flashed into the little brain
of the monkey—Cadj and his people were pursuing Tarzan of the Apes to
slay him. If Manu had been offended by Tarzan’s indifference to him upon
the night before, he had evidently forgotten it, for now he was quite as
excited about the danger which he saw menace the ape-man as he had been
upon the afternoon previous. At first he thought of running ahead, and
again warning Tarzan, but he feared to venture so far from the trees of
Opar, even if the thought of having to pass the hated Oparians had not
been sufficient to deter him from carrying out this plan. For a few
minutes he sat watching them, until they had all passed the kopje, and
then it became quite clear to him that they were heading directly for
the spot at which the last of Tarzan’s party had disappeared from the
valley—there could be no doubt that they were in pursuit of the
ape-man.

Manu scanned the valley once more toward Opar. There was nothing in
sight to deter him from an attempted return, and so, with the agility of
his kind, he scampered down the vertical face of the kopje and was off
at great speed toward the city’s wall. Just when he formulated the plan
that he eventually followed it is difficult to say. Perhaps he thought
it all out as he sat upon the kopje, watching Cadj and his people upon
the trail of the ape-man, or perhaps it occurred to him while he was
scampering across the barren waste toward Opar. It may just have popped
into his mind from a clear sky after he had regained the leafy sanctuary
of his own trees. Be that, however as it may, the fact remains, that as
La, High Priestess and princess of Opar, in company with several of her
priestesses, was bathing in a pool in one of the temple gardens, she was
startled by the screaming of a monkey, swinging frantically by his tail
from the branch of a great tree which overspread the pool—it was a
little gray monkey with a face so wise and serious that one might easily
have imagined that the fate of nations lay constantly upon the shoulders
of its owner.

“La, La,” it screamed, “they have gone to kill Tarzan. They have gone to
kill Tarzan.”

At the sound of that name La was instantly all attention. Standing waist
deep in the pool she looked up at the little monkey questioningly. “What
do you mean, Manu?” she asked. “It has been many moons since Tarzan was
at Opar. He is not here now. What are you talking about?”

“I saw him,” screamed Manu, “I saw him last night with many Gomangani.
He came to the great rock that lies in the valley before Opar; with all
his men he climbed to the top of it, went into the heart of it, and came
out with stones which they threw down into the valley. Afterward they
descended from the rock, and picked up the stones again and left the
valley—there,” and Manu pointed toward the northeast with one of his
hairy little fingers.

“How do you know it was Tarzan of the Apes?” asked La.

“Does Manu not know his cousin and his friend?” demanded the monkey.
“With my eyes I saw him—it was Tarzan of the Apes.”

La of Opar puckered her brows in thought. Deep in her heart smoldered
the fires of her great love for Tarzan. Fires that had been quenched by
the necessity that had compelled her marriage with Cadj since last she
had seen the ape-man. For it is written among the laws of Opar that the
High Priestess of the Flaming God must take a mate within a certain
number of years after her consecration. For many moons had La longed to
make Tarzan that mate. The ape-man had not loved her, and finally she
had come to a realization that he could never love her. Afterward she
had bowed to the frightful fate that had placed her in the arms of Cadj.

As month after month had passed and Tarzan had not returned to Opar, as
he had promised he would do, to see that no harm befell La, she had come
to accept the opinion of Cadj that the ape-man was dead, and though she
hated the repulsive Cadj none the less, her love for Tarzan had
gradually become little more than a sorrowful memory. Now to learn that
he was alive and had been so near was like re-opening an old wound. At
first she comprehended little else than that Tarzan had been close to
Opar, but presently the cries of Manu aroused her to a realization that
the ape-man was in danger—just what the danger was, she did not know.

“Who has gone to kill Tarzan of the Apes?” she demanded suddenly.

“Cadj, Cadj!” shrieked Manu. “He has gone with many, many men, and is
following upon the spoor of Tarzan.”

La sprang quickly from the pool, seized her girdle and ornaments from
her attendant and adjusting them hurriedly, sped through the garden and
into the temple.




                              CHAPTER VII
                        “YOU MUST SACRIFICE HIM”


WARILY CADJ and his hundred frightful followers, armed with their
bludgeons and knives, crept stealthily down the face of the barrier into
the valley below, upon the trail of the white man and his black
companions. They made no haste, for they had noted from the summit of
Opar’s outer wall, that the party they were pursuing moved very slowly,
though why, they did not know, for they had been at too great a distance
to see the burden that each of the blacks carried. Nor was it Cadj’s
desire to overtake his quarry by daylight, his plans contemplating a
stealthy night attack, the suddenness of which, together with the great
number of his followers, might easily confuse and overwhelm a sleeping
camp.

The spoor they followed was well marked. There could be no mistaking it,
and they moved slowly down the now gentle declivity, toward the bottom
of the valley. It was close to noon that they were brought to a sudden
halt by the discovery of a thorn boma recently constructed in a small
clearing just ahead of them. From the center of the boma arose the thin
smoke of a dying fire. Here, then, was the camp of the ape-man.

Cadj drew his followers into the concealment of the thick bushes that
bordered the trail, and from there he sent ahead a single man to
reconnoiter. It was but a few moments later that the latter returned to
say that the camp was deserted, and once again Cadj moved forward with
his men. Entering the boma they examined it in an effort to estimate the
size of the party that accompanied Tarzan. As they were thus occupied
Cadj saw something lying half concealed by bushes at the far end of the
boma. Very warily he approached it, for there was that about it which
not only aroused his curiosity but prompted him to caution, for it
resembled indistinctly the figure of a man, lying huddled upon the
ground.

With ready bludgeons a dozen of them approached the thing that had
aroused Cadj’s curiosity, and when they had come close to it they saw
lying before them the lifeless figure of Tarzan of the Apes.

“The Flaming God has reached forth to avenge his desecrated altar,”
cried the High Priest, his eyes glowing with the maniacal fires of
fanaticism. But another priest, more practical, perhaps, or at least
more cautious, kneeled beside the figure of the ape-man and placed his
ear against the latter’s heart.

“He is not dead,” he whispered; “perhaps he only sleeps.”

“Seize him, then, quickly,” cried Cadj, and an instant later Tarzan’s
body was covered by the hairy forms of as many of the frightful men as
could pile upon him. He offered no resistance—he did not even open his
eyes, and presently his arms were securely bound behind him.

“Drag him forth where the eye of the Flaming God may rest upon him,”
cried Cadj. They dragged Tarzan out into the center of the boma into the
full light of the sun, and Cadj, the High Priest, drawing his knife from
his loin cloth, raised it above his head and stood over the prostrate
form of his intended victim. Cadj’s followers formed a rough circle
about the ape-man and some of them pressed close behind their leader.
They appeared uneasy, looking alternately at Tarzan and their High
Priest, and then casting furtive glances at the sun, riding high in a
cloud-mottled sky. But whatever the thoughts that troubled their
half-savage brains, there was only one who dared voice his, and he was
the same priest who, upon the preceding day, had questioned Cadj’s
proposal to slay the ape-man.

“Cadj,” he said now, “who are you to offer up a sacrifice to the Flaming
God? It is the privilege alone of La, our High Priestess and our queen,
and indeed will she be angry when she learns what you have done.”

“Silence, Dooth!” cried Cadj; “I, Cadj, am the High Priest of Opar. I,
Cadj, am the mate of La, the queen. My word, too, is law in Opar. And
you would remain a priest, and you would remain alive, keep silence.”

“Your word is not law,” replied Booth, angrily, “and if you anger La,
the High Priestess, or if you anger the Flaming God, you may be punished
as another. If you make this sacrifice both will be angry.”

“Enough,” cried Cadj; “the Flaming God has spoken to me and has demanded
that I offer up as sacrifice this defiler of his temple.”

He knelt beside the ape-man and touched his breast above the heart with
the point of his sharp blade, and then he raised the weapon high above
him, preparatory to the fatal plunge into the living heart. At that
instant a cloud passed before the face of the sun and a shadow rested
upon them. A murmur rose from the surrounding priests.

“Look,” cried Dooth, “the Flaming God is angry. He has hidden his face
from the people of Opar.”

Cadj paused. He cast a half-defiant, half-frightened look at the cloud
obscuring the face or the sun. Then he rose slowly to his feet, and
extending his arms upward toward the hidden god of day, he remained for
a moment silent in apparently attentive and listening attitude. Then,
suddenly, he turned upon his followers.

“Priests of Opar,” he cried, “the Flaming God has spoken to his High
Priest, Cadj. He is not angered. He but wishes to speak to me alone, and
he directs that you go away into the jungle and wait until he has come
and spoken to Cadj, after which I shall call you to return. Go!”

For the most part they seemed to accept the word of Cadj as law, but
Dooth and a few others, doubtless prompted by a certain skepticism,
hesitated.

“Be gone!” commanded Cadj. And so powerful is the habit of obedience
that the doubters finally turned away and melted into the jungle with
the others. A crafty smile lighted the cruel face of the High Priest as
the last of them disappeared from sight, and then he once again turned
his attention to the ape-man. That, deep within his breast however,
lurked an inherent fear of his deity, was evidenced by the fact that he
turned questioning glances toward the sky. He had determined to slay the
ape-man while Dooth and the others were absent, yet the fear of his god
restrained his hand until the light of his deity should shine forth upon
him once more and assure him that the thing he contemplated might meet
with favor.

It was a large cloud that overcast the sun, and while Cadj waited his
nervousness increased. Six times he raised his knife for the fatal blow,
yet in each instance his superstition prevented the consummation of the
act. Five, ten, fifteen minutes passed, and still the sun remained
obscured. But now at last Cadj could see that it was nearing the edge of
the cloud, and once again he took his position kneeling beside the
ape-man with his blade ready for the moment that the sunlight should
flood again, for the last time, the living Tarzan. He saw it sweeping
slowly across the boma toward him, and as it came a look of demoniacal
hatred shone in his close-set, wicked eyes. Another instant and the
Flaming God would have set the seal of his approval upon the sacrifice.
Cadj trembled in anticipation. He raised the knife a trifle higher, his
muscles tensed for the downward plunge, and then the silence of the
jungle was broken by a woman’s voice, raised almost to a scream.

“Cadj!” came the single word, but with all the suddenness and all the
surprising effect of lightning from a clear sky.

His knife still poised on high, the High Priest turned in the direction
of the interruption to see at the clearing’s edge the figure of La, the
High Priestess, and behind her Dooth and a score of the lesser priests.

“What means this, Cadj?” demanded La, angrily, approaching rapidly
toward him across the clearing. Sullenly the High Priest rose.

“The Flaming God demanded the life of this unbeliever,” he cried.

“Speaker of lies,” retorted La, “the Flaming God communicates with men
through the lips of his High Priestess only. Too often already have you
attempted to thwart the will of your queen. Know, then, Cadj, that the
power of life and death which your queen holds is as potent over you as
another. During the long ages that Opar has endured, our legends tell us
that more than one High Priest has been offered upon the altar to the
Flaming God. And it is not unlikely that yet another may go the way of
the presumptuous. Curb, therefore, your vanity and your lust for power,
lest they prove your undoing.”

Cadj sheathed his knife and turned sullenly away, casting a venomous
look at Dooth, to whom he evidently attributed his undoing. That he was
temporarily abashed by the presence of his queen was evident, but to
those who knew Cadj there was little doubt that he still harbored his
intention to despatch the ape-man, and if the opportunity ever presented
itself that he would do so, for Cadj had a strong following among the
people and priests of Opar. There were many who doubted that La would
ever dare to incur the displeasure and anger of so important a portion
of her followers as to cause the death or degradation of their high
priest, who occupied his office by virtue of laws and customs so old
that their origin had been long lost in antiquity.

For years she had found first one excuse and then another to delay the
ceremonies that would unite her in marriage to the High Priest. She had
further aroused the antagonism of her people by palpable proofs of her
infatuation for the ape-man, and even though at last she had been
compelled to mate with Cadj, she had made no effort whatsoever to
conceal her hatred and loathing for the man. How much further she could
go with impunity was a question that often troubled those whose position
in Opar depended upon her favor, and, knowing all these conditions as he
did, it was not strange that Cadj should entertain treasonable thoughts
toward his queen. Leagued with him in his treachery was Oah, a priestess
who aspired to the power and offices of La. If La could be done away
with, then Cadj had the influence to see that Oah became High Priestess.
He also had Oah’s promise to mate with him and permit him to rule as
king, but as yet both were bound by the superstitious fear of their
flaming deity, and because of this fact was the life of La temporarily
made safe. It required, however, but the slightest spark to ignite the
flames of treason that were smoldering about her.

So far, she was well within her rights in forbidding the sacrifice of
Tarzan by the High Priest. But her fate, her very life, perhaps,
depended upon her future treatment of the prisoner. Should she spare
him, should she evidence in any way a return of the great love she had
once almost publicly avowed for him, it was likely that her doom would
be sealed. It was even questionable whether or not she might with
impunity spare his life and set him at liberty.

Cadj and the others watched her closely now as she crossed to the side
of Tarzan. Standing there silently for several moments she looked down
upon him.

“He is already dead?” she asked.

“He was not dead when Cadj sent us away,” volunteered Dooth. “If he is
dead now it is because Cadj killed him while we were away.”

“I did not kill him,” said Cadj. “That remains, as La, our queen, has
told you, for her to do. The eye of the Flaming God looks down upon you,
High Priestess of Opar. The knife is at your hip, the sacrifice lies
before you.”

La ignored the man’s words and turned toward Dooth. “If he still lives,”
she said, “construct a litter and bear him back to Opar.”

Thus, once more, came Tarzan of the Apes into the ancient colonial city
of the Atlantians. The effects of the narcotic that Kraski had
administered to him did not wear off for many hours. It was night when
he opened his eyes, and for a moment he was bewildered by the darkness
and the silence that surrounded him. All that he could scent at first
was that he lay upon a pile of furs and that he was uninjured; for he
felt no pain. Slowly there broke through the fog of his drugged brain
recollection of the last moment before unconsciousness had overcome him,
and presently he realized the trick that had been played upon him. For
how long he had been unconscious and where he then was he could not
imagine. Slowly he arose to his feet, finding that except for a slight
dizziness he was quite himself. Cautiously he felt around in the
darkness, moving with care, a hand outstretched, and always feeling
carefully with his feet for a secure footing. Almost immediately a stone
wall stopped his progress, and this he followed around four sides of
what he soon realized was a small room in which there were but two
openings, a door upon each of the opposite sides. Only his senses of
touch and smell were of value to him here. These told him only at first
that he was imprisoned in a subterranean chamber, but as the effects of
the narcotic diminished, the keenness of the latter returned, and with
its return there was borne in upon Tarzan’s brain an insistent
impression of familiarity in certain fragrant odors that impinged upon
his olfactory organs—a haunting suggestion that he had known them
before under similar circumstances. Presently from above, through earth
and masonry, came the shadow of an uncanny scream—just the faintest
suggestion of it reached the keen ears of the ape-man, but it was
sufficient to flood his mind with vivid recollections, and, by
association of ideas, to fix the identity of the familiar odors about
him. He knew at last that he was in the dark pit beneath Opar.

Above him, in her chamber in the temple, La, the High Priestess, tossed
upon a sleepless couch. She knew all too well the temper of her people
and the treachery of the High Priest, Cadj. She knew the religious
fanaticism which prompted the ofttime maniacal actions of her bestial
and ignorant followers, and she guessed truly that Cadj would inflame
them against her should she fail this time in sacrificing the ape-man to
the Flaming God. And it was the effort to find an escape from her
dilemma that left her sleepless, for it was not in the heart of La to
sacrifice Tarzan of the Apes. High Priestess of a horrid cult, though
she was, and queen of a race of half-beasts, yet she was a woman, too, a
woman who had loved but once and given that love to the godlike ape-man
who was again within her power. Twice before had he escaped her
sacrificial knife; in the final instance love had at last triumphed over
jealousy and fanaticism, and La, the woman, had realized that never
again could she place in jeopardy the life of the man she loved, however
hopeless she knew that love to be.

Tonight she was faced with a problem that she felt almost beyond her
powers of solution. The fact that she was mated with Cadj removed the
last vestige of hope that she had ever had of becoming the wife of the
ape-man. Yet she was no less determined to save Tarzan if it were
possible. Twice had he saved her life, once from a mad priest, and once
from Tantor in _must_. Then, too, she had given her word that when
Tarzan came again to Opar he came in friendship and would be received in
friendship. But the influence of Cadj was great, and she knew that that
influence had been directed unremittingly against the ape-man—she had
seen it in the attitude of her followers from the very moment that they
had placed Tarzan upon a litter to bear him back to Opar—she had seen
it in the evil glances that had been cast at her. Sooner or later they
would dare denounce her—all that they needed was some slight, new
excuse, that, she knew, they eagerly awaited in her forthcoming attitude
toward Tarzan. It was well after midnight when there came to her one of
the priestesses who remained always upon guard outside her chamber door.

“Dooth would speak with you,” whispered the hand-maiden.

“It is late,” replied La, “and men are not permitted in this part of the
temple. How came he here, and why?”

“He says that he comes in the service of La, who is in great danger,”
replied the girl.

“Fetch him here then,” said La, “and as you value your life see that you
tell no one.”

“I shall be as voiceless as the stones of the altar,” replied the girl,
as she turned and left the chamber.

A moment later she returned, bringing Dooth, who halted a few feet from
the High Priestess and saluted her. La signaled to the girl who had
brought him, to depart, and then she turned questioningly to the man.

“Speak, Dooth!” she commanded.

“We all know,” he said, “of La’s love for the strange ape-man, and it is
not for me, a lesser priest, to question the thoughts or acts of my High
Priestess. It is only for me to serve, as those would do better to serve
who now plot against you.”

“What do you mean, Dooth? Who plots against me?”

“Even at this minute are Cadj and Oah and several of the priests and
priestesses carrying out a plan for your undoing. They are setting spies
to watch you, knowing that you would liberate the ape-man, because there
will come to you one who will tell you that to permit him to escape will
be the easiest solution of your problem. This one will be sent by Cadj,
and then those who watch you will report to the people and to the
priests that they have seen you lead the sacrifice to liberty. But even
that will avail you nothing, for Cadj and Oah and the others have placed
upon the trail from Opar many men in hiding, who will fall upon the
ape-man and slay him before the Flaming God has descended twice into the
western forest. In but one way only may you save yourself, La of Opar.”

“And what is that way?” she asked.

“You must, with your own hands, upon the altar of our temple, sacrifice
the ape-man to the Flaming God.”




                              CHAPTER VIII
                          MYSTERY OF THE PAST


LA had breakfasted the following morning, and had sent Dooth with food
for Tarzan, when there came to her a young priestess, who was the sister
of Oah. Even before the girl had spoken La knew that she was an emissary
from Cadj, and that the treachery of which Dooth had warned her was
already under way. The girl was ill at ease and quite evidently
frightened, for she was young and held in high revere the queen whom she
had good reason to know was all-powerful, and who might even inflict
death upon her if she so wished. La, who had already determined upon a
plan of action that she knew would be most embarrassing to Cadj and his
conspirators, waited in silence for the girl to speak. But it was some
time before the girl could muster up her courage or find a proper
opening. Instead, she spoke of many things that had no bearing
whatsoever upon her subject, and La, the High Priestess, was amused at
her discomfiture.

“It is not often,” said La, “that the sister of Oah comes to the
apartments of her queen unless she is bidden. I am glad to see that she
at last realizes the service that she owes to the High Priestess of the
Flaming God.”

“I come,” said the girl, at last, speaking almost as one who has learned
a part, “to tell you that I have overheard that which may be of interest
to you, and which I am sure that you will be glad to hear.”

“Yes?” interrogated La, raising her arched eyebrows.

“I overheard Cadj speaking with the lesser priests,” the girl continued,
“and I distinctly heard him say that he would be glad if the ape-man
escaped, as that would relieve you, and Cadj as well, of much
embarrassment. I thought that La, the queen, would be glad to know this,
for it is known by all of us that La has promised friendship to the
ape-man, and therefore does not wish to sacrifice him upon the altar of
the Flaming God.”

“My duty is plain to me,” replied La, in a haughty voice, “and I do not
need Cadj nor any hand-maiden to interpret it to me. I also know the
prerogatives of a High Priestess, and that the right of sacrifice is one
of them. For this reason I prevented Cadj from sacrificing the stranger.
No other hand than mine may offer his heart’s blood to the Flaming God,
and upon the third day he shall die beneath my knife upon the altar of
our temple.”

The effect of these words upon the girl were precisely what La had
anticipated. She saw disappointment and chagrin written upon the face of
Cadj’s messenger, who now had no answer, for her instructions had not
foreseen this attitude upon the part of La. Presently the girl found
some lame pretext upon which to withdraw, and when she had left the
presence of the High Priestess, La could scarcely restrain a smile. She
had no intention of sacrificing Tarzan, but this, of course, the sister
of Oah did not know. So she returned to Cadj and repeated as nearly as
she could recall it, all that La had said to her. The High Priest was
much chagrined, for his plan had been now, not so much to encompass the
destruction of Tarzan as to lead La into the commission of an act that
would bring upon her the wrath of the priests and people of Opar, who,
properly instigated, would demand her life in expiation. Oah, who was
present when her sister returned, bit her lips, for great was her
disappointment. Never before had she seen so close at hand the
longed-for possibility of becoming High Priestess. For several minutes
she paced to and fro in deep thought, and then, suddenly, she halted
before Cadj.

“La loves this ape-man,” she said, “and even though she may sacrifice
him, it is only because of fear of her people. She loves him
still—loves him better, Cadj, than she has ever loved you. The ape-man
knows it, and trusts her, and because he knows it there is a way.
Listen, Cadj, to Oah. We will send one to the ape-man who shall tell him
that she comes from La, and that La has instructed her to lead him out
of Opar and set him free. This one shall lead him into our ambush and
when he is killed we shall go, many of us, before La, and accuse her of
treachery. The one who led the ape-man from Opar shall say that La
ordered her to do it, and the priests and the people will be very angry,
and then you shall demand the life of La. It will be very easy and we
shall be rid of both of them.”

“Good!” exclaimed Cadj. “We shall do this thing at dawn upon the morrow,
and before the Flaming God goes to his rest at night he shall look upon
a new High Priestess in Opar.”

That night Tarzan was aroused from his sleep by a sound at one of the
doors of his prison cell. He heard the bolt slipped back and the door
creak slowly open upon its ancient hinges. In the inky darkness he could
discern no presence, but he heard the stealthy movement of sandaled feet
upon the concrete floor, and then, out of the darkness, his name was
whispered, in a woman’s voice.

“I am here,” he replied. “Who are you and what do you want of Tarzan of
the Apes?”

“Your life is in danger,” replied the voice. “Come, follow me.”

“Who sent you?” demanded the ape-man, his sensitive nostrils searching
for a clue to the identity of the nocturnal visitor, but so heavily was
the air laden with the pungent odor of some heavy perfume with which the
body of the woman seemed to have been anointed, that there was no
distinguishing clue by which he might judge as to whether she was one of
the priestesses he had known upon the occasion of his former visits to
Opar, or an entire stranger to him.

“La sent me,” she said, “to lead you from the pits of Opar to the
freedom of the outside world beyond the city’s walls.” Groping in the
darkness she finally found him. “Here are your weapons,” she said,
handing them to him, and then she took his hand, turned and led him from
the dungeon, through a long, winding, and equally black corridor, down
flights of age-old concrete steps, through passages and corridors,
opening and closing door after door that creaked and groaned upon rusty
hinges. How far they traveled thus, and in what direction, Tarzan could
not guess. He had gleaned enough from Dooth, when the latter brought him
his food, to believe that in La he had a friend who would aid him, for
Dooth had told him that she had saved him from Cadj when the latter had
discovered him unconscious in the deserted boma of the Europeans who had
drugged and left him. And so, the woman having said that she came from
La, Tarzan followed her willingly. He could not but recall Jane’s
prophecy of the evils that he might expect to befall him should he
persist in undertaking this third trip to Opar, and he wondered if,
after all, his wife was right, that he should never again escape from
the toils of the fanatical priests of the Flaming God. He had not, of
course, expected to enter Opar, but there seemed to hang over the
accursed city a guardian demon that threatened the life of whosoever
dared approach the forbidden spot or wrest from the forgotten treasure
vaults a portion of their great hoard.

For more than an hour his guide led him through the Stygian darkness of
underground passages, until, ascending a flight of steps they emerged
into the center of a clump of bushes, through which the pale light of
the moon was barely discernible. The fresh air, however, told him that
they had reached the surface of the ground, and now the woman, who had
not spoken a word since she had led him from his cell, continued on in
silence, following a devious trail that wound hither and thither in an
erratic fashion through a heavy forest choked with undergrowth, and
always upward.

From the location of the stars and moon, and from the upward trend of
the trail, Tarzan knew that he was being led into the mountains that lie
behind Opar—a place he had never thought of visiting, since the country
appeared rough and uninviting, and not likely to harbor game such as
Tarzan cared most to hunt. He was already surprised by the nature of the
vegetation, for he had thought the hills barren except for stunted trees
and scraggy bush. As they continued upon their way, climbing ever
upward, the moon rose higher in the heavens, until its soft light
revealed more clearly to the keen eyes of the ape-man the topography of
the country they were traversing, and then it was that he saw they were
ascending a narrow, thickly wooded gorge, and he understood why the
heavy vegetation had been invisible from the plain before Opar. Himself
naturally uncommunicative, the woman’s silence made no particular
impression upon Tarzan. Had he had anything to say he should have said
it, and likewise he assumed that there was no necessity for her speaking
unless there was some good reason for speaking, for those who travel far
and fast have no breath to waste upon conversation.

The eastern stars were fading at the first hint of coming dawn when the
two scrambled up a precipitous bank that formed the upper end of the
ravine, and came out upon comparatively level ground. As they advanced
the sky lightened, and presently the woman halted at the edge of a
declivity, and as the day broke Tarzan saw below him a wooded basin in
the heart of the mountain, and, showing through the trees at what
appeared to be some two or three miles distant, the outlines of a
building that glistened and sparkled and scintillated in the light of
the new sun. Then he turned and looked at his companion, and surprise
and consternation were writ upon his face, for standing before him was
La, the High Priestess of Opar.

“You?” he exclaimed. “Now indeed will Cadj have the excuse that Dooth
said he sought to put you out of the way.”

“He will never have the opportunity to put me out of the way,” replied
La, “for I shall never return to Opar.”

“Never return to Opar!” he exclaimed, “then where are you going? Where
can you go?”

“I am going with you,” she replied. “I do not ask that you love me. I
only ask that you take me away from Opar and from the enemies who would
slay me. There was no other way. Manu, the monkey, overheard them
plotting, and he came to me and told me all that they would do. Whether
I saved you or sacrificed you, it had all been the same with me. They
were determined to do away with me, that Oah might be High Priestess and
Cadj king of Opar. But I should not have sacrificed you, Tarzan, under
any circumstances, and this, then, seemed the only way in which we might
both be saved. We could not go to the north or the west across the plain
of Opar for there Cadj has placed warriors in ambush to waylay you, and
though you be Tarzan and a mighty fighter, they would overwhelm you by
their very numbers and slay you.”

“But where are you leading me?” asked Tarzan.

“I have chosen the lesser of two evils; in this direction lies an
unknown country, filled for us Oparians with legends of grim monsters
and strange people. Never has an Oparian ventured here and returned
again to Opar. But if there lives in all the world a creature who could
win through this unknown valley, it be you, Tarzan of the Apes.”

“But if you know nothing of this country, or its inhabitants,” demanded
Tarzan, “how is it that you so well know the trail that leads to it?”

“We well know the trail to the summit, but that is as far as I have ever
been before. The great apes and the lions use this trail when they come
down into Opar. The lions, of course, cannot tell us where it leads, and
the great apes will not, for usually we are at war with them. Along this
trail they come down into Opar to steal our people, and upon this trail
we await to capture them, for often we offer a great ape in sacrifice to
the Flaming God, or rather that was our former custom, but for many
years they have been too wary for us, the toll being upon the other
side, though we do not know for what purpose they steal our people,
unless it be that they eat them. They are a very powerful race, standing
higher than Bolgani, the gorilla, and infinitely more cunning, for, as
there is ape blood in our veins, so is there human blood in the veins of
these great apes that dwell in the valley above Opar.”

“Why is it, La, that we must pass through this valley in order to escape
from Opar? There must be some other way.”

“There is no other way, Tarzan of the Apes,” she replied. “The avenues
across the valley are guarded by Cadj’s people. Our only chance of
escape lies in this direction, and I have brought you along the only
trail that pierces the precipitous cliffs that guard Opar upon the
south. Across or around this valley we must go in an attempt to find an
avenue across the mountain and down upon the other side.”

The ape-man stood gazing down into the wooded basin below them, his mind
occupied with the problems of the moment. Had he been alone he would not
have come this way, for he was sufficiently confident of his own prowess
to believe that he might easily have crossed the valley of Opar in
comparative safety, regardless of Cadj’s plans to the contrary. But he
was not alone. He had now to think of La, and he realized that in her
efforts to save him she had placed him under a moral obligation which he
might not disregard.

To skirt the basin, keeping as far as possible from the building, which
he could see in the distance, seemed the wisest course to pursue, since,
of course, his sole purpose was to find a way across the mountain and
out of this inhospitable country. But the glimpses he caught of the
edifice, half concealed as it was amid the foliage of great trees,
piqued his curiosity to such an extent that he felt an almost
irresistible urge to investigate. He did not believe that the basin was
inhabited by other than wild beasts, and he attributed the building
which he saw to the handiwork of an extinct or departed people, either
contemporaneous with the ancient Atlantians who had built Opar or,
perhaps, built by the original Oparians themselves, but now forgotten by
their descendants. The glimpses which he caught of the building
suggested such size and magnificence as might belong to a palace.

The ape-man knew no fear, though he possessed to a reasonable extent
that caution which is inherent in all wild beasts. He would not have
hesitated to pit his cunning and his prowess against the lower orders,
however ferocious they might be, for, unlike man, they could not band
together to his undoing. But should men elect to hunt him in numbers he
knew that a real danger would confront him, and that, in the face of
their combined strength and intelligence, his own might not avail him.
There was little likelihood, however, he reasoned, that the basin was
inhabited by human beings. Doubtless closer investigation of the
building he saw would reveal that it was but a deserted ruin, and that
the most formidable foes he would encounter would be the great apes and
the lions. Of neither of these had he any fear; with the former it was
even reasonable to imagine that he might establish amicable relations.
Believing as he did that he must look for egress from the basin upon its
opposite side, it was only natural that he should wish to choose the
most direct route across the basin. Therefore his inclinations to
explore the valley were seconded by considerations of speed and
expediency.

“Come,” he said to La, and started down the declivity which led into the
basin in the direction of the building ahead of them.

“You are not going that way?” she cried in astonishment.

“Why not?” he said. “It is the shortest way across the valley, and in so
far as I can judge our trail over the mountains is more likely to lie in
that direction than elsewhere.”

“But I am afraid,” she said. “The Flaming God alone knows what hideous
dangers lurk in the depths of that forest below us.”

“Only Numa and the Mangani,” he said. “Of these we need have no fear.”

“You fear nothing,” she said, “but I am only a woman.”

“We can die but once,” replied Tarzan, “and that once we must die. To be
always fearing, then, would not avert it, and would make life miserable.
We shall go the short way, then, and perhaps we shall see enough to make
the risk well worth while.”

They followed a well-worn trail downward among the brush, the trees
increasing in both size and number as they approached the floor of the
basin, until at last they were walking beneath the foliage of a great
forest. What wind there was was at their back, and the ape-man, though
he moved at a swinging walk, was constantly on the alert. Upon the
hard-packed earth of the trail there were few signs to indicate the
nature of the animals that had passed to and fro, but here and there the
spoor of a lion was in evidence. Several times Tarzan stopped and
listened, often he raised his head and his sensitive nostrils dilated as
he sought for whatever the surrounding air might hold for him.

“I think there are men in this valley,” he said presently. “For some
time I have been almost positive that we are being watched. But whoever
is stalking us is clever beyond words, for it is only the barest
suggestion of another presence that I can scent.”

La looked about apprehensively and drew close to his side. “I see no
one,” she said, in a low voice.

“Nor I,” he replied. “Nor can I catch any well-defined scent spoor, yet
I am positive that someone is following us. Someone or something that
trails by scent, and is clever enough to keep its scent from us. It is
more than likely that, whatever it is, it is passing through the trees,
at a sufficient height to keep its scent spoor always above us. The air
is right for that, and even if he were up wind from us we might not
catch his scent at all. Wait here, I will make sure,” and he swung
lightly into the branches of a nearby tree and swarmed upward with the
agility of Manu, the monkey. A moment later he descended to the girl’s
side.

“I was right,” he said, “there is someone, or something, not far off.
But whether it is man or Mangani I cannot say, for the odor is a strange
one to me, suggesting neither, yet both. But two can play at that game.
Come!” And he swung the girl to his shoulder and a moment later had
carried her high into the trees. “Unless he is close enough to watch us,
which I doubt,” he said, “our spoor will be carried over his head and it
will be some time before he can pick it up again, unless he is wise
enough to rise to a higher level.”

La marveled at the strength of the ape-man as he carried her easily from
tree to tree, and at the speed with which he traversed the swaying,
leafy trail. For half an hour he continued onward, and then quite
suddenly he stopped, poised high upon a swaying bough.

“Look!” he said, pointing ahead and below them. Looking in the direction
that he indicated the girl saw through the leafy foliage a small,
heavily stockaded compound, in which were some dozen huts that
immediately riveted her surprised attention, nor no less was the
ape-man’s curiosity piqued by what he glimpsed vaguely through the
foliage. Huts they evidently were, but they seemed to be moving to and
fro in the air, some moving gently backward and forward, while others
jumped up and down in more or less violent agitation. Tarzan swung to a
nearer tree and descended to a sturdy branch, to which he lowered La
from his shoulder. Then he crept forward stealthily, the girl following,
for she was, in common with the other Oparians, slightly arboreal.
Presently they reached a point where they could see plainly the village
below them, and immediately the seeming mystery of the dancing huts was
explained.

They were of the bee-hive type, common to many African tribes, and were
about seven feet in diameter by six or seven in height, but instead of
resting on the ground, each hut was suspended by a heavy hawser-like
grass rope to a branch of one of the several giant trees that grew
within the stockade. From the center of the bottom of each hut trailed
another lighter rope. From his position above them Tarzan saw no
openings in any of the huts large enough to admit the body of a man,
though there were several openings four or five inches in diameter in
the sides of each hut about three feet above the floor. Upon the ground,
inside the compound, were several of the inhabitants of the village, if
the little collection of swinging houses could be dignified by such a
name. Nor were the people any less strange to Tarzan than their peculiar
domiciles. That they were negroes was evident, but of a type entirely
unfamiliar to the ape-man. All were naked, and without any ornamentation
whatsoever other than a few daubs of color, placed apparently at random
upon their bodies. They were tall, and very muscular appearing, though
their legs seemed much too short and their arms too long for perfect
symmetry, while their faces were almost bestial in contour, their jaws
being exaggeratedly prognathous while above their beetling brows there
was no forehead, the skull running back in an almost horizontal plane to
a point.

As Tarzan stood looking at them he saw another descend one of the ropes
that dangled from the bottom of a hut, and immediately he understood the
purpose of the ropes and the location of the entrances to the dwellings.
The creatures squatting about upon their haunches were engaged in
feeding. Several had bones from which they were tearing the uncooked
flesh with their great teeth, while others ate fruit and tubers. There
were individuals of both sexes and of various ages, from childhood to
maturity, but there was none that seemed very old. They were practically
hairless, except for scraggy, reddish brown locks upon their heads. They
spoke but seldom and then in tones which resembled the growling of
beasts, nor once, while Tarzan watched them, did he see one laugh or
even smile, which, of all their traits, rendered them most unlike the
average native of Africa. Though Tarzan’s eyes searched the compound
carefully he saw no indication of cooking utensils or of any fire. Upon
the ground about them lay their weapons, short javelin-like spears and a
sort of battle-ax with a sharpened, metal blade. Tarzan of the Apes was
glad that he had come this way, for it had permitted him to see such a
type of native as he had not dreamed existed—a type so low that it
bordered closely upon the brute. Even the Waz-dons and Ho-dons of
Pal-ul-don were far advanced in the scale of evolution compared to
these.

As he looked at them he could not but wonder that they were sufficiently
intelligent to manufacture the weapons they possessed, which he could
see, even at a distance, were of fine workmanship and design. Their
huts, too, seemed well and ingeniously made, while the stockade which
surrounded the little compound was tall, strong, and well-built,
evidently for the purpose of safeguarding them against the lions which
infested the basin.

As Tarzan and La watched these people they became presently aware of the
approach of some creature from their left, and a moment later they saw a
man similar to those of the compound swing from a tree that overhung the
stockade and drop within. The others acknowledged his coming with scarce
more than indifferent glances. He came forward and, squatting among
them, appeared to be telling them of something, and though Tarzan could
not hear his words he judged from his gestures and the sign language
which he used to supplement his meager speech, that he was telling his
fellows of the strange creatures he had seen in the forest a short time
before, and the ape-man immediately judged that this was the same whom
he had been aware was following them and whom he had successfully put
off the scent. The narration evidently excited them, for some of them
arose, and leaping up and down with bent knees, slapped their arms
against their sides grotesquely. The expressions upon their faces
scarcely changed, however, and after a moment each squatted down again
as he had been before.

It was while they were thus engaged that there echoed through the forest
a loud scream that awakened in the mind of the ape-man many savage
memories.

“Bolgani,” he whispered to La.

“It is one of the great apes,” she said, and shuddered.

Presently they saw him, swinging down the jungle trail toward the
compound. A huge gorilla, but such a gorilla as Tarzan of the Apes had
never looked on before. Of almost gigantic stature, the creature was
walking erect with the stride of a man, not ever once touching his
knuckles to the ground. His head and face were almost those of a
gorilla, and yet there was a difference, as Tarzan could note as the
creature came nearer—it was Bolgani, with the soul and brain of a
man—nor was this all that rendered the creature startling and unique.
Stranger perhaps than aught else was the fact that it wore
ornaments—and such ornaments! Gold and diamonds sparkled against its
shaggy coat, above its elbows were numerous armlets and there were
anklets upon its legs, while from a girdle about its middle there
depended before and behind a long narrow strip that almost touched the
ground and which seemed to be entirely constructed of golden spangles
set with small diamonds. Never before had John Clayton, Lord Greystoke,
seen such a display of barbaric finery, nor even amidst the jewels of
Opar such a wealth of priceless stones.

Immediately after the hideous scream had first broken the comparative
silence of the forest, Tarzan had noticed its effects upon the inmates
of the compound. Instantly they had arisen to their feet. The women and
children scurried behind the boles of the trees or clambered up the
ropes into their swinging cages, while some of the men advanced to what
Tarzan now saw was the gate of the compound. Outside this gate the
gorilla halted and again raised his voice, but this time in speech
rather than his hideous scream.




[Illustration: “Upon the third day Tarzan shall die beneath my knife”]




                               CHAPTER IX
                           THE SHAFT OF DEATH


AS the huge, man-like gorilla entered the compound the warriors closed
the gate, and fell back respectfully as he advanced to the center of the
village where he stood for a moment, looking about.

“Where are the shes and the balus?” he asked, tersely. “Call them.”

The women and the children must have heard the command, but they did not
emerge from their hiding places. The warriors moved about uneasily,
evidently torn by the conflicting emotions of fear of the creature who
had issued the order, and reluctance to fulfil his commands.

“Call them,” he repeated, “or go and fetch them.” But at last one of the
warriors mustered the courage to address him.

“This village has already furnished one woman within the moon,” he said.
“It is the turn of another village.”

“Silence!” roared the gorilla-man, advancing threateningly toward him.
“You are a rash Gomangani to threaten the will of a Bolgani—I speak
with the voice of Numa, the Emperor; obey or die.”

Trembling, the black turned and called the women and children, but none
responded to his summons. The Bolgani gestured impatiently.

“Go and fetch them,” he demanded. And the blacks, cringing, moved
sullenly across the compound toward the hiding places of their women and
children. Presently they returned, dragging them with them, by the arms
sometimes, but usually by the hair. Although they had seemed loath to
give them up, they showed no gentleness toward them, nor any indication
of affection. Their attitude toward them, however, was presently
explained to Tarzan by the next words of the warrior who had spoken
previously.

“Great Bolgani,” he said, addressing the gorilla-man, “if Numa takes
always from this village, there will soon be not enough women for the
warriors here, and there will be too few children, and in a little time
there will be none of us left.”

“What of that?” growled the gorilla-man. “There are already too many
Gomangani in the world. For what other purpose were you created than to
serve Numa, the Emperor, and his chosen people, the Bolgani?” As he
spoke he was examining the women and children, pinching their flesh and
pounding upon their chests and backs. Presently he returned to a
comparatively young woman, straddling whose hip was a small child.

“This one will do,” he said, snatching the child from its mother and
hurling it roughly across the compound, where it lay against the face of
the palisade, moaning pitifully, and perchance broken and dying. The
poor, stupid mother, apparently more beast than human, stood for a
moment trembling in dumb anguish, and then she started to rush forward
to her child. But the gorilla-man seized her with one of his great hands
and hurled her to the ground. Simultaneously there arose from the silent
foliage above them the fierce and terrible scream of the challenging
bull ape. In terror the simple blacks cast affrighted glances upward,
while the gorilla-man raised his hideous face in snarling anger toward
the author of the bestial cry.

Swaying upon a leafy bough they beheld such a creature as none of them
had ever looked upon before—a white man, a Tarmangani, with hide as
hairless as the body of Histah, the snake. In the instant that they
looked they saw the spear hand of the stranger drive forward, and the
shaft, speeding with the swiftness of thought, bury itself in the breast
of the Bolgani. With a single scream of rage and pain, the gorilla-man
crumbled to the earth, where he struggled spasmodically for a moment and
then lay still, in death.

The ape-man held no great love for the Gomangani as a race, but inherent
in his English brain and heart was the spirit of fair play, which
prompted him to spontaneous espousal of the cause of the weak. On the
other hand Bolgani was his hereditary enemy. His first battle had been
with Bolgani, and his first kill.

The poor blacks were still standing in stupefied wonderment when he
dropped from the tree to the ground among them. They stepped back in
terror, and simultaneously they raised their spears menacingly against
him.

“I am a friend,” he said. “I am Tarzan of the Apes. Lower your spears.”
And then he turned and withdrew his own weapon from the carcass of
Bolgani. “Who is this creature, that may come into your village and slay
your balus and steal your shes? Who is he, that you dare not drive your
spears through him?”

“He is one of the great Bolgani,” said the warrior, who seemed to be
spokesman, and the leader in the village. “He is one of the chosen
people of Numa, the Emperor, and when Numa learns that he has been
killed in our village, we shall all die for what you have done.”

“Who is Numa?” demanded the ape-man, to whom Numa, in the language of
the great apes, meant only lion.

“Numa is the Emperor,” replied the black, “who lives with the Bolgani in
the Palace of Diamonds.”

He did not express himself in just these words, for the meager language
of the great apes, even though amplified by the higher intelligence and
greater development of the Oparians, is still primitive in the extreme.
What he had really said was more nearly “Numa, the king of kings, who
lives in the king’s hut of glittering stones,” which carried to the
ape-man’s mind the faithful impression of the fact. Numa, evidently, was
the name adopted by the king of the Bolgani, and the title _emperor_,
indicated merely his preeminence among the chiefs.

The instant that Bolgani had fallen the bereaved mother rushed forward
and gathered her injured infant into her arms. She squatted now against
the palisade, cuddling it to her breast, and crooning softly to pacify
its cries, which Tarzan suddenly discovered were more the result of
fright than injury. At first the mother had been frightened when he had
attempted to examine the child, drawing away and baring her fighting
fangs, much after the manner of a wild beast. But presently there had
seemed to come to her dull brain a realization that this creature had
saved her from Bolgani, that he had permitted her to recover her infant
and that he was making no effort to harm either of them. Convinced at
last that the child was only bruised, Tarzan turned again toward the
warriors, who were talking together in an excited little group a few
paces away. As they saw him advancing, they spread into a semi-circle
and stood facing him.

“The Bolgani will send and slay us all,” they said, “when they learn
what has happened in our village, unless we can take to them the
creature that cast the spear. Therefore, Tarmangani, you shall go with
us to the Palace of Diamonds, and there we shall give you over to the
Bolgani and perhaps Numa will forgive us.”

The ape-man smiled. What kind of creature did the simple blacks think
him, to believe that he would permit himself to be easily led into the
avenging hands of Numa, the Emperor of the Bolgani. Although he was
fully aware of the risk that he had taken in entering the village, he
knew too that because he was Tarzan of the Apes there was a greater
chance that he would be able to escape than that they could hold him. He
had faced savage spearmen before and knew precisely what to expect in
the event of hostilities. He preferred, however, to make peace with
these people, for it had been in his mind to find some means of
questioning them the moment that he had discovered their village hidden
away in this wild forest.

“Wait,” he said, therefore. “Would you betray a friend who enters your
village to protect you from an enemy?”

“We will not slay you, Tarmangani. We will take you to the Bolgani for
Numa, the Emperor.”

“But that would amount to the same thing,” returned Tarzan, “for you
well know that Numa, the Emperor, will have me slain.”

“That we cannot help,” replied the spokesman. “If we could save you we
would, but when the Bolgani discover what has happened in our village,
it is we who must suffer, unless, perhaps, they are satisfied to punish
you instead.”

“But why need they know that the Bolgani has been slain in your
village?” asked Tarzan.

“Will they not see his body next time they come?” asked the spokesman.

“Not if you remove his body,” replied Tarzan.

The blacks scratched their heads. Into their dull, ignorant minds had
crept no such suggestion of a solution of their problem. What the
stranger said was true. None but they and he knew that Bolgani had been
slain within their palisade. To remove the body, then, would be to
remove all suspicion from their village. But where were they to take it?
They put the question to Tarzan.

“I will dispose of him for you,” replied the Tarmangani. “Answer my
questions truthfully and I will promise to take him away and dispose of
him in such a manner that no one will know how he died, or where.”

“What are your questions?” asked the spokesman.

“I am a stranger in your country. I am lost here,” replied the ape-man.
“And I would find a way out of the valley in that direction.” And he
pointed toward the southeast.

The black shook his head. “There may be a way out of the valley in that
direction,” he said, “but what lies beyond no man knows, nor do I know
whether there be a way out or whether there be anything beyond. It is
said that all is fire beyond the mountain, and no one dares to go and
see. As for myself, I have never been far from my village—at most only
a day’s march to hunt for game for the Bolgani, and to gather fruit and
nuts and plantains for them. If there is a way out I do not know, nor
would any man dare take it if there were.”

“Does no one ever leave the valley?” asked Tarzan.

“I know not what others do,” replied the spokesman, “but those of this
village never leave the valley.”

“What lies in that direction?” asked Tarzan, pointing toward Opar.

“I do not know,” replied the black, “only that sometimes the Bolgani
come from that way, bringing with them strange creatures; little men
with white skins and much hair, with short, crooked legs and long arms,
and sometimes white shes, who do not look at all like the strange little
Tarmangani. But where they get them I do not know, nor do they ever tell
us. Are these all the questions that you wish to ask?”

“Yes, that is all,” replied Tarzan, seeing that he could gain no
information whatsoever from these ignorant villagers. Realizing that he
must find his own way out of the valley, and knowing that he could do so
much more quickly and safely if he was alone, he decided to sound the
blacks in relation to a plan that had entered his mind.

“If I take the Bolgani away, so that the others will not know that he
was slain in your village, will you treat me as a friend?” he asked.

“Yes,” replied the spokesman.

“Then,” said Tarzan, “will you keep here for me my white she until I
return again to your village? You can hide her in one of your huts if a
Bolgani comes, and no one need ever know that she is among you. What do
you say?”

The blacks looked around. “We do not see her,” said the spokesman.
“Where is she?”

“If you will promise to protect her and hide her, I will bring her
here,” replied the ape-man.

“I will not harm her,” said the head man, “but I do not know about the
others.”

Tarzan turned toward the others who were clustered about, listening. “I
am going to bring my mate into your village,” he said, “and you are
going to hide her, and feed her, and protect her until I return. I shall
take away the body of Bolgani, so that no suspicion shall fall upon you,
and when I come back I shall expect to find my mate safe and unharmed.”

He had thought it best to describe La as his mate, since thus they might
understand that she was under his protection, and if they felt either
gratitude or fear toward him, La would be safer. Raising his face toward
the tree where she was hidden, he called to La to descend, and a moment
later she clambered down to the lower branches of one of the trees in
the compound and dropped into Tarzan’s arms.

“This is she,” he said to the assembled blacks, “guard her well and hide
her from the Bolgani. If, upon my return, I find that any harm has
befallen her, I shall take word to the Bolgani that it was you who did
this,” and he pointed to the corpse of the gorilla-man.

La turned appealingly toward him, fear showing in her eyes. “You are not
going to leave me here?” she asked.

“Temporarily only,” replied Tarzan. “These poor people are afraid that
if the death of this creature is traced to their village they shall all
suffer the wrath of his fellows, and so I have promised that I will
remove the evidence in such a way as to direct suspicion elsewhere. If
they are sufficiently high in the scale of evolution to harbor
sentiments of gratitude, which I doubt, they will feel obligated to me
for having slain this beast, as well as for preventing suspicion falling
upon them. For these reasons they should protect you, but to make
assurance doubly sure I have appealed also to their fear of the
Bolgani—a characteristic which I know they possess. I am sure that you
will be as safe here as with me until I return, otherwise I would not
leave you. But alone I can travel much faster, and while I am gone I
intend to find a way out of this valley, then I shall return for you and
together we may make our escape easily, or at least with greater
assurance of success than were we to blunder slowly about together.”

“You will come back?” she asked, a note of fear, longing, and appeal in
her voice.

“I will come back,” he replied, and then turning to the blacks: “Clear
out one of these huts for my mate, and see that she is not molested, and
that she is furnished with food and water. And remember what I said,
upon her safety your lives depend.”

Stooping, Tarzan lifted the dead gorilla-man to his shoulder, and the
simple blacks marveled at his prowess. Of great physical strength
themselves, there was not one of them but would have staggered under the
weight of Bolgani, yet this strange Tarmangani walked easily beneath his
burden, and when they had opened the gate in the palisade he trotted
down the jungle trail as though he carried nothing but his own frame. A
moment later he disappeared at a turn and was swallowed by the forest.

La turned to the blacks: “Prepare my hut,” she said, for she was very
tired and longed to rest. They eyed her askance and whispered among
themselves. It was evident to her that there was a difference of opinion
among them, and presently from snatches of conversation which she
overheard she realized that while some of the blacks were in favor of
obeying Tarzan’s injunctions implicitly, there were others who objected
strenuously and who wished to rid their village of her, lest she be
discovered there by the Bolgani, and the villagers be punished
accordingly.

“It would be better,” she heard one of the blacks say, “to turn her over
to the Bolgani at once and tell them that we saw her mate slay the
messenger of Numa. We will say that we tried to capture the Tarmangani
but that he escaped, and that we were only able to seize his mate. Thus
will we win the favor of Numa, and perhaps then he will not take so many
of our women and children.”

“But the Tarmangani is great,” replied one of the others. “He is more
powerful even than Bolgani. He would make a terrible enemy, and, as the
chances are that the Bolgani would not believe us we should then have
not only them but the Tarmangani to fear.”

“You are right,” cried La, “the Tarmangani is great. Far better will it
be for you to have him for friend than enemy. Single-handed he grapples
with Numa, the lion, and slays him. You saw with what ease he lifted the
body of the mighty Bolgani to his shoulder. You saw him trot lightly
down the jungle trail beneath his burden. With equal ease will he carry
the corpse through the trees of the forest, far above the ground. In all
the world there is no other like him, no other like Tarzan of the Apes.
If you are wise, Gomangani, you will have Tarzan for a friend.”

The blacks listened to her, their dull faces revealing nothing of what
was passing in their stupid brains. For a few moments they stood thus in
silence, the hulking, ignorant blacks upon one side, the slender,
beautiful white woman upon the other. Then La spoke.

“Go,” she cried imperiously, “and prepare my hut.” It was the High
Priestess of the Flaming God; La, the queen of Opar, addressing slaves.
Her regal mien, her commanding tones, wrought an instant change in the
villagers, and La knew then that Tarzan was right in his assumption that
they could be moved only through fear, for now they turned quickly,
cowering like whipped dogs, and hastened to a nearby hut, which they
quickly prepared for her, fetching fresh leaves and grasses for its
floor, and fruit and nuts and plantains for her meal.

When all was ready, La clambered up the rope and through the circular
opening in the floor of the hanging hut, which she found large and airy,
and now reasonably clean. She drew the rope up after her and threw
herself upon the soft bed they had prepared for her, and soon the gentle
swaying of the swinging hut, the soft murmur of the leaves above her,
the voices of the birds and insects combined with her own physical
exhaustion to lull her into deep slumber.




                               CHAPTER X
                             MAD TREACHERY


TO the northwest of the valley of Opar the smoke rose from the cook
fires of a camp in which some hundred blacks and six whites were eating
their evening meal. The negroes squatted sullen and morose, mumbling
together in low tones over their meager fare, the whites, scowling and
apprehensive, kept their firearms close at hand. One of them, a girl,
and the only member of her sex in the party, was addressing her fellows:

“We have Adolph’s stinginess and Esteban’s braggadocio to thank for the
condition in which we are,” she said.

The fat Bluber shrugged his shoulder, the big Spaniard scowled.

“For vy,” asked Adolph, “am I to blame?”

“You were too stingy to employ enough carriers. I told you at the time
that we ought to have had two hundred blacks in our party, but you
wanted to save a little money, and now what is the result? Fifty men
carrying eighty pounds of gold apiece and the other carriers are
overburdened with camp equipment, while there are scarce enough left for
askari to guard us properly. We have to drive them like beasts to make
any progress and to keep them from throwing away their loads, and they
are fagged out and angry. They don’t require much of an excuse to kill
us all on the spot. On top of all this they are underfed. If we could
keep their bellies filled we could probably keep them happy and
reasonably contented, but I have learned enough about natives to know
that if they are hungry they are neither happy nor contented, even in
idleness. If Esteban had not bragged so much about his prowess as a
hunter we should have brought enough provisions to last us through, but
now, though we are barely started upon our return journey, we are upon
less than half rations.”

“I can’t kill game when there isn’t any game,” growled the Spaniard.

“There is plenty of game,” said Kraski, the Russian. “We see the tracks
of it every day.”

The Spaniard eyed him venomously. “If there is so much game,” he said,
“go out and get it yourself.”

“I never claimed to be a hunter,” replied Kraski, “though I could go out
with a sling shot and a pea shooter and do as well as you have.”

The Spaniard leaped to his feet menacingly, and instantly the Russian
covered him with a heavy service revolver.

“Cut that business,” cried the girl, sharply, leaping between them.

“Let the blighters fight,” growled John Peebles. “If one of ’em kills
the hother there’ll be fewer to split the swag, and ’ere we are ’n
that’s that.”

“For vy should ve quarrel?” demanded Bluber. “Dere is enough for
all—over forty-tree t’ousand pounds apiece. Ven you get mad at me you
call me a dirty Jew und say dat I am stingy, but _Mein Gott_! you
Christians are vorser. You vould kill vun of your friends to get more
money. _Oi! Oi!_ tank _Gott_ dat I am not a Christian.”

“Shut up,” growled Throck, “or we’ll have forty-three thousand pounds
more to divide.”

Bluber eyed the big Englishman fearfully. “Come, come, Dick,” he oozed,
in his oiliest tones, “you vouldn’t get mad at a leedle choke vould you,
und me your best friend?”

“I’m sick of all this grousin’,” said Throck. “I h’ain’t no high-brow, I
h’ain’t nothin’ but a pug. But I got sense enough to know that Flora’s
the only one in the bloomin’ bunch whose brains wouldn’t rattle around
in a peanut shell. John, Bluber, Kraski and me, we’re here because we
could raise the money to carry out Flora’s plan. The dago there”—and he
indicated Esteban—“because his face and his figure filled the bill.
There don’t any of us need no brains for this work, and there ain’t any
of us got any more brains than we need. Flora’s the brains of this
outfit, and the sooner everyone understands that and takes orders from
her, the better off we’ll all be. She’s been to Africa with this Lord
Greystoke feller before—you wuz his wife’s maid, wasn’t you, Flora? And
she knows somethin’ about the country and the natives and the animals,
and there don’t none of us know nuttin’.”

“Throck is right,” said Kraski, quickly, “we’ve been muddling long
enough. We haven’t had a boss, and the thing to do is to make Flora boss
from now on. If anyone can get us out of this, she can, and from the way
those fellows over there are acting,” and he nodded toward the blacks,
“we’ll be lucky if we ever get out with our skins, let alone taking any
of the gold with us.”

“_Oil Oi!_ You don’t mean to leave the gold?” almost shrieked Bluber.

“I mean that we do whatever Flora thinks best,” replied Kraski. “If she
says to leave the gold, we’ll leave it.”

“That we do,” seconded Throck.

“I’m for it,” said Peebles. “Whatever Flora says goes.”

The Spaniard nodded his assent sullenly.

“The rest of us are all for it, Bluber. How about you?” asked Kraski.

“O vell—sure—if you say so,” said Bluber, “und as John says ‘und here
ve ain’t und vat’s dat.’”

“And now, Flora,” said Peebles, “you’re the big ’un. What you say goes.
What’ll we do next?”

“Very well,” said the girl; “we shall camp here until these men are
rested, and early tomorrow we’ll start out intelligently and
systematically, and get meat for them. With their help we can do it.
When they are rested and well fed we will start on again for the coast,
moving very slowly, so as not to tire them too much. This is my first
plan, but it all hinges upon our ability to get meat. If we do not find
it I shall bury the gold here, and we will do our best to reach the
coast as quickly as possible. There we shall recruit new porters—twice
as many as we have now—and purchase enough provisions to carry us in
and out again. As we come back in, we will cache provisions at every
camping place for our return trip, thus saving the necessity of carrying
heavy loads all the way in and out again. In this way we can come out
light, with twice as many porters as we actually need. And by working
them in shifts we will travel much faster and there will be no
grumbling. These are my two plans. I am not asking you what you think of
them, because I do not care. You have made me chief, and I am going to
run this from now on as I think best.”

“Bully for you,” roared Peebles; “that’s the kind of talk I likes to
hear.”

“Tell the head man I want to see him, Carl,” said the girl, turning to
Kraski, and a moment later the Russian returned with a burly negro.

“Owaza,” said the girl, as the black halted before her, “we are short of
food and the men are burdened with loads twice as heavy as they should
carry. Tell them that we shall wait here until they are rested and that
tomorrow we shall all go out and hunt for meat. You will send your boys
out under three good men, and they will act as beaters and drive the
game in to us. In this way we should get plenty of meat, and when the
men are rested and well fed we will move on slowly. Where game is
plentiful we will hunt and rest. Tell them that if they do this and we
reach the coast in safety and with all our loads, I shall pay them twice
what they agreed to come for.”

“_Oi! Oi!_” spluttered Bluber, “twice vat dey agreed to come for! Oh,
Flora, vy not offer dem ten per cent? Dot vould be fine interest on
their money.”

“Shut up, you fool,” snapped Kraski, and Bluber subsided, though he
rocked back and forth, shaking his head in disapproval.

The black, who had presented himself for the interview with sullen and
scowling demeanor, brightened visibly now. “I will tell them,” he said,
“and I think that you will have no more trouble.”

“Good,” said Flora, “go and tell them now,” and the black turned and
left.

“There,” said the girl, with a sigh of relief, “I believe that we can
see light ahead at last.”

“Tvice vat ve promised to pay them!” bawled Bluber, “_Oi! Oi!_”

Early the following morning they prepared to set out upon the hunt. The
blacks were now smiling and happy in anticipation of plenty of meat, and
as they tramped off into the jungle they were singing gayly. Flora had
divided them into three parties, each under a head man, with explicit
directions for the position each party was to take in the line of
beaters. Others had been detailed to the whites as gun-bearers, while a
small party of the askari were left behind to guard the camp. The
whites, with the exception of Esteban, were armed with rifles. He alone
seemed inclined to question Flora’s authority, insisting that he
preferred to hunt with spear and arrows in keeping with the part he was
playing. The fact that, though he had hunted assiduously for weeks, yet
had never brought in a single kill, was not sufficient to dampen his
egotism. So genuinely had he entered his part that he really thought he
was Tarzan of the Apes, and with such fidelity had he equipped himself
in every detail, and such a master of the art of make-up was he, that,
in conjunction with his splendid figure and his handsome face that were
almost a counterpart of Tarzan’s, it was scarcely to be wondered at that
he almost fooled himself as successfully as he had fooled others, for
there were men among the carriers who had known the great ape-man, and
even these were deceived, though they wondered at the change in him,
since in little things he did not deport himself as Tarzan, and in the
matter of kills he was disappointing.

Flora Hawkes, who was endowed with more than a fair share of
intelligence, realized that it would not be well to cross any of her
companions unnecessarily, and so she permitted Esteban to hunt that
morning in his own way, though some of the others grumbled a little at
her decision.

“What is the difference?” she asked them, after the Spaniard had set out
alone. “The chances are that he could use a rifle no better than he uses
his spear and arrows. Carl and Dick are really the only shots among us,
and it is upon them we depend principally for the success of our hunt
today. Esteban’s egotism has been so badly bumped that it is possible
that he will go to the last extremity to make a kill today—let us hope
that he is successful.”

“I hope he breaks his fool neck,” said Kraski. “He has served our
purpose and we would be better off if we were rid of him.”

The girl shook her head negatively. “No,” she said, “we must not think
or speak of anything of that kind. We went into this thing together, let
us stick together until the end. If you are wishing that one of us is
dead, how do you know that others are not wishing that you were dead?”

“I haven’t any doubt but that Miranda wishes I were dead,” replied
Kraski. “I never go to bed at night without thinking that the damned
greaser may try to stick a knife into me before morning. And it don’t
make me feel any kinder toward him to hear you defending him, Flora.
You’ve been a bit soft on him from the start.”

“If I have, it’s none of your business,” retorted the girl.

And so they started out upon their hunt, the Russian scowling and angry,
harboring thoughts of vengeance or worse against Esteban, and Esteban,
hunting through the jungle, was occupied with his hatred and his
jealousy. His dark mind was open to every chance suggestion of a means
for putting the other men of the party out of the way, and taking the
woman and the gold for himself. He hated them all; in each he saw a
possible rival for the affections of Flora, and in the death of each he
saw not only one less suitor for the girl’s affections, but forty-three
thousand additional pounds to be divided among fewer people. His mind
was thus occupied to the exclusion of the business of hunting, which
should have occupied him solely, when he came through a patch of heavy
underbrush, and stepped into the glaring sunlight of a large clearing,
face to face with a party of some fifty magnificent ebon warriors. For
just an instant Esteban stood frozen in a paralysis of terror,
forgetting momentarily the part he was playing—thinking of himself only
as a lone white man in the heart of savage Africa facing a large band of
warlike natives—cannibals, perhaps. It was that moment of utter silence
and inaction that saved him, for, as he stood thus before them, the
Waziri saw in the silent, majestic figure their beloved lord in a
characteristic pose.

“O Bwana, Bwana,” cried one of the warriors, rushing forward, “it is
indeed you, Tarzan of the Apes, Lord of the Jungle, whom we had given up
as lost. We, your faithful Waziri, have been searching for you, and even
now we were about to dare the dangers of Opar, fearing that you might
have ventured there without us and had been captured.”

The black, who had at one time accompanied Tarzan to London as a body
servant, spoke broken English, an accomplishment of which he was
inordinately proud, losing no opportunity to air his attainment before
his less fortunate fellows. The fact that it had been he whom fate had
chosen to act as spokesman was indeed a fortunate circumstance to
Miranda. Although the latter had applied himself assiduously to
mastering the dialect of the west coast carriers, he would have been
hard put to it to carry on a conversation with one of them, while he
understood nothing of the Waziri tongue. Flora had schooled him
carefully and well in the lore of Tarzan, so that he realized now that
he was in the presence of a band of the ape-man’s faithful Waziri. Never
before had he seen such magnificent blacks—clean-cut, powerful men,
with intelligent faces and well molded features, appearing as much
higher in the scale of evolution as were the west coast blacks above the
apes. Lucky indeed was Esteban Miranda that he was quick witted and a
consummate actor. Otherwise must he have betrayed his terror and his
chagrin upon learning that this band of Tarzan’s fierce and faithful
followers was in this part of the country. For a moment longer he stood
in silence before them, gathering his wits, and then he spoke, realizing
that his very life depended upon his plausibility. And as he thought a
great light broke upon the shrewd brain of the unscrupulous Spaniard.

“Since I last saw you,” he said, “I discovered that a party of white men
had entered the country for the purpose of robbing the treasure vaults
of Opar. I followed them until I found their camp, and then I came in
search of you, for there are many of them and they have many ingots of
gold, for they have already been to Opar. Follow me, and we will raid
their camp and take the gold from them. Come!” and he turned back toward
the camp that he had just quitted.

As they made their way along the jungle trail, Usula, the Waziri who had
spoken English to him, walked at Esteban’s side. Behind them the
Spaniard could hear the other warriors speaking in their native tongue,
no word of which he understood, and it occurred to him that his position
would be most embarrassing should he be addressed in the Waziri
language, which, of course, Tarzan must have understood perfectly. As he
listened to the chatter of Usula his mind was working rapidly, and
presently, as though it were an inspiration, there recurred to him the
memory of an accident that had befallen Tarzan, which had been narrated
to him by Flora—the story of the injury he had received in the treasure
vaults of Opar upon the occasion that he had lost his memory because of
a blow upon the head. Esteban wondered if he had committed himself too
deeply at first to attribute to amnesia any shortcomings in the
portrayal of the rôle he was acting. At its worst, however, it seemed to
him the best that he could do. He turned suddenly upon Usula.

“Do you remember,” he asked, “the accident that befell me in the
treasure vaults of Opar, depriving me of my memory?”

“Yes, Bwana, I remember it well,” replied the black.

“A similar accident has befallen me,” said Esteban. “A great tree fell
in my path, and in falling a branch struck me upon the head. It has not
caused me to lose my memory entirely, but since then it is with
difficulty that I recall many things, and there are others which I must
have forgotten entirely, for I do not know your name, nor do I
understand the words that my other Waziri are speaking about me.”

Usula looked at him compassionately. “Ah, Bwana, sad indeed is the heart
of Usula to hear that this accident has befallen you. Doubtless it will
soon pass away as did the other, and in the meantime I, Usula, will be
your memory for you.”

“Good,” said Esteban, “tell the others that they may understand, and
tell them also that I have lost the memory of other things besides. I
could not now find my way home without you, and my other senses are dull
as well. But as you say, Usula, it will soon pass off, and I shall be
myself again.”

“Your faithful Waziri will rejoice indeed with the coming of that
moment,” said Usula.

As they approached the camp, Miranda cautioned Usula to warn his
followers to silence, and presently he halted them at the outskirts of
the clearing where they could attain a view of the boma and the tents,
guarding which was a little band of a half-dozen askari.

“When they see our greater numbers they will make no resistance,” said
Esteban. “Let us surround the camp, therefore, and at a signal from me
we will advance together, when you shall address them, saying that
Tarzan of the Apes comes with his Waziri for the gold they have stolen,
but that he will spare them if they will leave the country at once and
never return.”

Had it fulfilled his purpose as well, the Spaniard would have willingly
ordered his Waziri to fall upon the men guarding the camp and destroy
them all, but to his cunning brain had been born a cleverer scheme. He
wanted these men to see him with the Waziri and to live to tell the
others that they had seen him, and to repeat to Flora and her followers
the thing that Esteban had in his mind to tell one of the askari, while
the Waziri were gathering up the gold ingots from the camp.

In directing Usula to station his men about the camp, Esteban had him
warn them that they were not to show themselves until he had crept out
into the clearing and attracted the attention of the askari on guard.
Fifteen minutes, perhaps, were consumed in stationing his men, and then
Usula returned to Esteban to report that all was ready.

“When I raise my hand then you will know that they have recognized me
and that you are to advance,” Esteban cautioned him, and stepped forward
slowly into the clearing. One of the askari saw him and recognized him
as Esteban. The Spaniard took a few steps closer to the boma and then
halted.

“I am Tarzan of the Apes,” he said; “your camp is entirely surrounded by
my warriors. Make no move against us and we shall not hurt you.”

He waved his hand. Fifty stalwart Waziri stepped into view from the
concealing verdure of the surrounding jungle. The askari eyed them in
ill-concealed terror, fingering their rifles nervously.

“Do not shoot,” cautioned Esteban, “or we shall slay you all.” He
approached more closely and his Waziri closed in about him, entirely
surrounding the boma.

“Speak to them, Usula,” said Esteban. The black stepped forward.

“We are the Waziri,” he cried, “and this is Tarzan of the Apes, Lord of
the Jungle, our master. We have come to recover the gold of Tarzan that
you have stolen from the treasure vaults of Opar. This time we shall
spare you on condition that you leave the country and never return. Tell
this word to your masters; tell them that Tarzan watches, and that his
Waziri watch with him. Lay down your rifles.”

The askari, glad to escape so easily, complied with the demands of
Usula, and a moment later the Waziri had entered the boma, and at
Esteban’s direction were gathering up the golden ingots. As they worked,
Esteban approached one of the askari, whom he knew spoke broken English.

“Tell your master,” he said, “to give thanks for the mercy of Tarzan who
has exacted a toll of but one life for this invasion of his country and
theft of his treasure. The creature who presumes to pose as Tarzan I
have slain, and his body I shall take away with me and feed to the
lions. Tell them that Tarzan forgives even their attempt to poison him
upon the occasion that he visited their camp, but only upon the
condition that they never return to Africa, and that they divulge the
secret of Opar to no others. Tarzan watches and his Waziri watch, and no
man may enter Africa without Tarzan’s knowledge. Even before they left
London I knew that they were coming. Tell them that.”

It took but a few minutes for the Waziri to gather up the golden ingots,
and before the askari had recovered from the surprise of their
appearance, they had gone again into the jungle, with Tarzan, their
master.

It was late in the afternoon before Flora and the four white men
returned from their hunt, surrounded by happy, laughing blacks, bearing
the fruits of a successful chase.

“Now that you are in charge, Flora,” Kraski was saying, “fortune is
smiling upon us indeed. We have enough meat here for several days, and
with plenty of meat in their bellies they ought to make good progress.”

“I vill say it myself dot t’ings look brighter,” said Bluber.

“Blime, they do that,” said Throck. “I’m tellin’ yu Flora’s a bright
one.”

“What the devil is this?” demanded Peebles, “what’s wrong with them
beggars.” And he pointed toward the boma which was now in sight, and
from which the askari were issuing at a run, jabbering excitedly as they
raced toward them.

“Tarzan of the Apes has been here,” they cried excitedly. “He has been
here with all his Waziri—a thousand great warriors—and though we
fought, they overcame us, and taking the gold they went away. Tarzan of
the Apes spoke strange words to me before they left. He said that he had
killed one of your number who had dared to call himself Tarzan of the
Apes. We do not understand it. He went away alone to hunt when you went
in the morning, and he came back shortly with a thousand warriors, and
he took all the gold and he threatened to kill us and you if you ever
return to this country again.”

“Vot, vot?” cried Bluber, “der gold iss gone? _Oi! Oi!_” And then they
all commenced to ask questions at once until Flora silenced them.

“Come,” she said to the leader of the askari, “we will return to the
boma and then you shall tell me slowly and carefully all that has
happened since we left.”

She listened intently to his narrative, and then questioned him
carefully upon various points several times. At last she dismissed him.
Then she turned to her confederates.

“It is all clear to me,” she said. “Tarzan recovered from the effects of
the drug we administered. Then he followed us with his Waziri, caught
Esteban and killed him and, finding the camp, has taken the gold away.
We shall be fortunate indeed if we escape from Africa with our lives.”

“_Oi! Oi!_” almost shrieked Bluber, “der dirty crook. He steals all our
gold, und ve lose our two t’ousand pounds into the bargain. _Oi! Oi!_”

“Shut up, you dirty Jew,” growled Throck. “If it hadn’t a’ been for you
and the dago this ’ere thing would never a ’appened. With ’im abraggin’
about ’is ’unting and not bein’ able to kill anything, and you
a-squeezin’ every bloomin’ hapenny, we’re in a rotten mess—that we are.
This ’ere Tarzan bounder he bumped off Esteban, which is the best work
what ’e ever done. Too bloody bad you weren’t ’ere to get it too, and
what I got a good mind to do is to slit your throat meself.”

“Stow the guff, Dick,” roared Peebles; “it wasn’t nobody’s fault, as far
as I can see. Instead of talkin’ what we oughter do is to go after this
’ere Tarzan feller and take the bloomin’ gold away from ’im.”

Flora Hawkes laughed. “We haven’t a chance in the world,” she said. “I
know this Tarzan bloke. If he was all alone we wouldn’t be a match for
him, but he’s got a bunch of his Waziri with him, and there are no finer
warriors in Africa than they. And they’d fight for him to the last man.
You just tell Owaza that you’re thinking of going after Tarzan of the
Apes and his Waziri to take the gold away from them, and see how long
it’d be before we wouldn’t have a single nigger with us. The very name
of Tarzan scares these west coast blacks out of a year’s growth. They
would sooner face the devil. No, sir, we’ve lost, and all we can do is
to get out of the country, and thank our lucky stars if we manage to get
out alive. The ape-man will watch us. I should not be surprised if he
were watching us this minute.” Her companions looked around
apprehensively at this, casting nervous glances toward the jungle. “And
he’d never let us get back to Opar for another load, even if we could
prevail upon our blacks to return there.”

“Two t’ousand pounds, two t’ousand pounds!” wailed Bluber. “Und all dis
suit, vot it cost me tventy guineas vot I can’t vear it again in England
unless I go to a fancy dress ball, vich I never do.”

Kraski had not spoken, but had sat with eyes upon the ground, listening
to the others. Now he raised his head. “We have lost our gold,” he said,
“and before we get back to England we stand to spend the balance of our
two thousand pounds—in other words our expedition is a total loss. The
rest of you may be satisfied to go back broke, but I am not. There are
other things in Africa besides the gold of Opar, and when we leave the
country there is no reason why we shouldn’t take something with us that
will repay us for our time and investment.”

“What do you mean?” asked Peebles.

“I have spent a lot of time talking with Owaza,” replied Kraski, “trying
to learn their crazy language, and I have come to find out a lot about
the old villain. He’s as crooked as they make ’em, and if he were to be
hanged for all his murders, he’d have to have more lives than a cat, but
notwithstanding all that, he’s a shrewd old fellow, and I’ve learned a
lot more from him than just his monkey talk—I have learned enough, in
fact, so that I feel safe in saying that if we stick together we can go
out of Africa with a pretty good sized stake. Personally, I haven’t
given up the gold of Opar yet. What we’ve lost, we’ve lost, but there’s
plenty left where that came from, and some day, after this blows over,
I’m coming back to get my share.”

“But how about this other thing?” asked Flora. “How can Owaza help us?”

“There’s a little bunch of Arabs down here,” explained Kraski, “stealing
slaves and ivory. Owaza knows where they are working and where their
main camp is. There are only a few of them, and their blacks are nearly
all slaves who would turn on them in a minute. Now the idea is this: we
have a big enough party to overpower them and take their ivory away from
them if we can get their slaves to take our side. We don’t want the
slaves; we couldn’t do anything with them if we had them, so we can
promise them their freedom for their help, and give Owaza and his gang a
share in the ivory.”

“How do you know Owaza will help us?” asked Flora.

“The idea is his; that’s the reason I know,” replied Kraski.

“It sounds good to me,” said Peebles; “I ain’t fer goin’ ’ome empty
’anded.” And in turn the others signified their approval of the scheme.




                               CHAPTER XI
                         STRANGE INCENSE BURNS


AS Tarzan carried the dead Bolgani from the village of the Gomangani, he
set his steps in the direction of the building he had seen from the rim
of the valley, the curiosity of the man overcoming the natural caution
of the beast. He was traveling up wind and the odors wafted down to his
nostrils told him that he was approaching the habitat of the Bolgani.
Intermingled with the scent spoor of the gorilla-men was that of
Gomangani and the odor of cooked food, and the suggestion of a heavily
sweet scent, which the ape-man could connect only with burning incense,
though it seemed impossible that such a fragrance could emanate from the
dwellings of the Bolgani. Perhaps it came from the great edifice he had
seen—a building which must have been constructed by human beings, and
in which human beings might still dwell, though never among the
multitudinous odors that assailed his nostrils did he once catch the
faintest suggestion of the man scent of whites.

When he perceived from the increasing strength of their odor, that he
was approaching close to the Bolgani, Tarzan took to the trees with his
burden, that he might thus stand a better chance of avoiding discovery,
and presently, through the foliage ahead, he saw a lofty wall, and,
beyond, the outlines of the weird architecture of a strange and
mysterious pile—outlines that suggested a building of another world, so
unearthly were they, and from beyond the wall came the odor of the
Bolgani and the fragrance of the incense, intermingled with the scent
spoor of Numa, the lion. The jungle was cleared away for fifty feet
outside the wall surrounding the building, so that there was no tree
overhanging the wall, but Tarzan approached as closely as he could,
while still remaining reasonably well concealed by the foliage. He had
chosen a point at a sufficient height above the ground to permit him to
see over the top of the wall.

The building within the enclosure was of great size, its different parts
appearing to have been constructed at various periods, and each with
utter disregard to uniformity, resulting in a conglomeration of
connecting buildings and towers, no two of which were alike, though the
whole presented a rather pleasing, if somewhat bizarre appearance. The
building stood upon an artificial elevation about ten feet high,
surrounded by a retaining wall of granite, a wide staircase leading to
the ground level below. About the building were shrubbery and trees,
some of the latter appearing to be of great antiquity, while one
enormous tower was almost entirely covered by ivy. By far the most
remarkable feature of the building, however, lay in its rich and
barbaric ornamentation. Set into the polished granite of which it was
composed was an intricate mosaic of gold and diamonds; glittering stones
in countless thousands scintillated from façades, minarets, domes, and
towers.

The enclosure, which comprised some fifteen or twenty acres, was
occupied for the most part by the building. The terrace upon which it
stood was devoted to walks, flowers, shrubs, and ornamental trees, while
that part of the area below, which was within the range of Tarzan’s
vision, seemed to be given over to the raising of garden truck. In the
garden and upon the terrace were naked blacks, such as he had seen in
the village where he had left La. There were both men and women, and
these were occupied with the care of growing things within the
enclosure. Among them were several of the gorilla-like creatures such as
Tarzan had slain in the village, but these performed no labor, devoting
themselves, rather, it seemed, to directing the work of the blacks,
toward whom their manner was haughty and domineering, sometimes even
brutal. These gorilla-men were trapped in rich ornaments, similar to
those upon the body which now rested in a crotch of the tree behind the
ape-man.

As Tarzan watched with interest the scene below him, two Bolgani emerged
from the main entrance, a huge portal, some thirty feet in width, and
perhaps fifteen feet high. The two wore head-bands, supporting tall,
white feathers. As they emerged they took post on either side of the
entrance, and cupping their hands before their mouths gave voice to a
series of shrill cries that bore a marked resemblance to trumpet calls.
Immediately the blacks ceased work and hastened to the foot of the
stairs descending from the terrace to the garden. Here they formed lines
on either side of the stairway, and similarly the Bolgani formed two
lines upon the terrace from the main portal to the stairway, forming a
living aisle from one to the other. Presently from the interior of the
building came other trumpet-like calls, and a moment later Tarzan saw
the head of a procession emerging. First came four Bolgani abreast, each
bedecked with an ornate feather headdress, and each carrying a huge
bludgeon erect before him. Behind these came two trumpeters, and twenty
feet behind the trumpeters paced a huge, black-maned lion, held in leash
by four sturdy blacks, two upon either side, holding what appeared to be
golden chains that ran to a scintillant diamond collar about the beast’s
neck. Behind the lion marched twenty more Bolgani, four abreast. These
carried spears, but whether they were for the purpose of protecting the
lion from the people or the people from the lion Tarzan was at a loss to
know.

The attitude of the Bolgani lining either side of the way between the
portal and the stairway indicated extreme deference, for they bent their
bodies from their waists in a profound bow while Numa was passing
between their lines. When the beast reached the top of the stairway the
procession halted, and immediately the Gomangani ranged below prostrated
themselves and placed their foreheads on the ground. Numa, who was
evidently an old lion, stood with lordly mien surveying the prostrate
humans before him. His evil eyes glared glassily, the while he bared his
tusks in a savage grimace, and from his deep lungs rumbled forth an
ominous roar, at the sound of which the Gomangani trembled in unfeigned
terror. The ape-man knit his brows in thought. Never before had he been
called upon to witness so remarkable a scene of the abasement of man
before a beast. Presently the procession continued upon its way
descending the staircase and turning to the right along a path through
the garden, and when it had passed them the Gomangani and the Bolgani
arose and resumed their interrupted duties.

Tarzan remained in his concealment watching them, trying to discover
some explanation for the strange, paradoxical conditions that he had
witnessed. The lion, with his retinue, had turned the far corner of the
palace and disappeared from sight. What was he to these people, to these
strange creatures? What did he represent? Why this topsy-turvy
arrangement of species? Here man ranked lower than the half-beast, and
above all, from the deference that had been accorded him, stood a true
beast—a savage carnivore.

He had been occupied with his thoughts and his observations for some
fifteen minutes following the disappearance of Numa around the eastern
end of the palace, when his attention was attracted to the opposite end
of the structure by the sound of other shrill trumpet calls. Turning his
eyes in that direction, he saw the procession emerging again into view,
and proceeding toward the staircase down which they had entered the
garden. Immediately the notes of the shrill call sounded upon their ears
the Gomangani and the Bolgani resumed their original positions from
below the foot of the staircase to the entrance to the palace, and once
again was homage paid to Numa as he made his triumphal entry into the
building.

Tarzan of the Apes ran his fingers through his mass of tousled hair, but
finally he was forced to shake his head in defeat—he could find no
explanation whatsoever for all that he had witnessed. His curiosity,
however, was so keenly piqued that he determined to investigate the
palace and surrounding grounds further before continuing on his way in
search of a trail out of the valley.

Leaving the body of Bolgani where he had cached it, he started slowly to
circle the building that he might examine it from all sides from the
concealing foliage of the surrounding forest. He found the architecture
equally unique upon all sides, and that the garden extended entirely
around the building, though a portion upon the south side of the palace
was given over to corrals and pens in which were kept numerous goats and
a considerable flock of chickens. Upon this side, also, were several
hundred swinging, beehive huts, such as he had seen in the native
village of the Gomangani. These he took to be the quarters of the black
slaves, who performed all the arduous and menial labor connected with
the palace.

The lofty granite wall which surrounded the entire enclosure was pierced
by but a single gate which opened opposite the east end of the palace.
This gate was large and of massive construction, appearing to have been
built to withstand the assault of numerous and well-armed forces. So
strong did it appear that the ape-man could not but harbor the opinion
that it had been constructed to protect the interior against forces
equipped with heavy battering rams. That such a force had ever existed
within the vicinity in historic times seemed most unlikely, and Tarzan
conjectured, therefore, that the wall and the gate were of almost
unthinkable antiquity, dating, doubtless, from the forgotten age of the
Atlantians, and constructed, perhaps, to protect the builders of the
Palace of Diamonds from the well-armed forces that had come from
Atlantis to work the gold mines of Opar and to colonize central Africa.

While the wall, the gate, and the palace itself, suggested in many ways
almost unbelievable age, yet they were in such an excellent state of
repair that it was evident that they were still inhabited by rational
and intelligent creatures; while upon the south side Tarzan had seen a
new tower in process of construction, where a number of blacks working
under the direction of Bolgani were cutting and shaping granite blocks
and putting them in place.

Tarzan had halted in a tree near the east gate to watch the life passing
in and out of the palace grounds beneath the ancient portal, and as he
watched, a long cavalcade of powerful Gomangani emerged from the forest
and entered the enclosure. Swung in hides between two poles, this party
was carrying rough-hewn blocks of granite, four men to a block. Two or
three Bolgani accompanied the long line of carriers, which was preceded
and followed by a detachment of black warriors, armed with battle-axes
and spears. The demeanor and attitude of the black porters, as well as
of the Bolgani, suggested to the ape-man nothing more nor less than a
caravan of donkeys, plodding their stupid way at the behest of their
drivers. If one lagged he was prodded with the point of a spear or
struck with its haft. There was no greater brutality shown than in the
ordinary handling of beasts of burden the world around, nor in the
demeanor of the blacks was there any more indication of objection or
revolt than you see depicted upon the faces of a long line of
burden-bearing mules; to all intents and purposes they were dumb, driven
cattle. Slowly they filed through the gateway and disappeared from
sight.

A few moments later another party came out of the forest and passed into
the palace grounds. This consisted of fully fifty armed Bolgani and
twice as many black warriors with spears and axes. Entirely surrounded
by these armed creatures were four brawny porters, carrying a small
litter, upon which was fastened an ornate chest about two feet wide by
four feet long, with a depth of approximately two feet. The chest itself
was of some dark, weather-worn wood, and was reinforced by bands and
corners of what appeared to be virgin gold in which were set many
diamonds. What the chest contained Tarzan could not, of course,
conceive, but that it was considered of great value was evidenced by the
precautions for safety with which it had been surrounded. The chest was
borne directly into the huge, ivy-covered tower at the northeast corner
of the palace, the entrance to which, Tarzan now first observed, was
secured by doors as large and heavy as the east gate itself.

At the first opportunity that he could seize to accomplish it
undiscovered, Tarzan swung across the jungle trail and continued through
the trees to that one in which he had left the body of the Bolgani.
Throwing this across his shoulder he returned to a point close above the
trail near the east gate, and seizing upon a moment when there was a
lull in the traffic he hurled the body as close to the portal as
possible.

“Now,” thought the ape-man, “let them guess who slew their fellow if
they can.”

Making his way toward the southeast, Tarzan approached the mountains
which lie back of the Valley of the Palace of Diamonds. He had often to
make detours to avoid native villages and to keep out of sight of the
numerous parties of Bolgani that seemed to be moving in all directions
through the forest. Late in the afternoon he came out of the hills into
full view of the mountains beyond—rough, granite hills they were, whose
precipitous peaks arose far above the timber line. Directly before him a
well-marked trail led into a canyon, which he could see wound far upward
toward the summit. This, then, would be as good a place to commence his
investigations as another. And so, seeing that the coast was clear, the
ape-man descended from the trees, and taking advantage of the underbrush
bordering the trail, made his way silently, yet swiftly, into the hills.
For the most part he was compelled to worm his way through thickets, for
the trail was in constant use by Gomangani and Bolgani, parties passing
up it empty-handed and, returning, bearing blocks of granite. As he
advanced more deeply into the hills the heavy underbrush gave way to a
lighter growth of scrub, through which he could pass with far greater
ease though with considerable more risk of discovery. However, the
instinct of the beast that dominated Tarzan’s jungle craft permitted him
to find cover where another would have been in full view of every enemy.
Half way up the mountain the trail passed through a narrow gorge, not
more than twenty feet wide and eroded from solid granite cliffs. Here
there was no concealment whatsoever, and the ape-man realized that to
enter it would mean almost immediate discovery. Glancing about, he saw
that by making a slight detour he could reach the summit of the gorge,
where, amid tumbled, granite boulders and stunted trees and shrubs, he
knew that he could find sufficient concealment, and perhaps a plainer
view of the trail beyond.

Nor was he mistaken, for, when he had reached a vantage point far above
the trail, he saw ahead an open pocket in the mountain, the cliffs
surrounding which were honeycombed with numerous openings, which, it
seemed to Tarzan, could be naught else than the mouths of tunnels. Rough
wooden ladders reached to some of them, closer to the base of the
cliffs, while from others knotted ropes dangled to the ground below. Out
of these tunnels emerged men carrying little sacks of earth, which they
dumped in a common pile beside a rivulet which ran through the gorge.
Here other blacks, supervised by Bolgani, were engaged in washing the
dirt, but what they hoped to find or what they did find, Tarzan could
not guess.

Along one side of the rocky basin many other blacks were engaged in
quarrying the granite from the cliffs, which had been cut away through
similar operations into a series of terraces running from the floor of
the basin to the summit of the cliff. Here naked blacks toiled with
primitive tools under the supervision of savage Bolgani. The activities
of the quarrymen were obvious enough, but what the others were bringing
from the mouths of the tunnels Tarzan could not be positive, though the
natural assumption was that it was gold. Where, then, did they obtain
their diamonds? Certainly not from these solid granite cliffs.

A few minutes’ observation convinced Tarzan that the trail he had
followed from the forest ended in this little cul-de-sac, and so he
sought a way upward and around it, in search of a pass across the range.

The balance of that day and nearly all the next he devoted to his
efforts in this direction, only in the end to be forced to admit that
there was no egress from the valley upon this side. To points far above
the timber line he made his way, but there, always, he came face to face
with sheer, perpendicular cliffs of granite towering high above him,
upon the face of which not even the ape-man could find foothold. Along
the southern and eastern sides of the basin he carried his
investigation, but with similar disappointing results, and then at last
he turned his steps back toward the forest with the intention of seeking
a way out through the valley of Opar with La, after darkness had fallen.

The sun had just risen when Tarzan arrived at the native village in
which he had left La, and no sooner did his eyes rest upon it than he
became apprehensive that something was amiss, for, not only was the gate
wide open but there was no sign of life within the palisade, nor was
there any movement of the swinging huts that would indicate that they
were occupied. Always wary of ambush, Tarzan reconnoitered carefully
before descending into the village. To his trained observation it became
evident that the village had been deserted for at least twenty-four
hours. Running to the hut in which La had been hidden he hastily
ascended the rope and examined the interior—it was vacant, nor was
there any sign of the High Priestess. Descending to the ground, the
ape-man started to make a thorough investigation of the village in
search of clews to the fate of its inhabitants and of La. He had
examined the interiors of several huts when his keen eyes noted a slight
movement of one of the swinging, cage-like habitations some distance
from him. Quickly he crossed the intervening space, and as he approached
the hut he saw that no rope trailed from its doorway. Halting beneath,
Tarzan raised his face to the aperture, through which nothing but the
roof of the hut was visible.

“Gomangani,” he cried, “it is I, Tarzan of the Apes. Come to the opening
and tell me what has become of your fellows and of my mate, whom I left
here under the protection of your warriors.”

There was no answer, and again Tarzan called, for he was positive that
someone was hiding in the hut.

“Come down,” he called again, “or I will come up after you.”

Still there was no reply. A grim smile touched the ape-man’s lips as he
drew his hunting knife from its sheath and placed it between his teeth,
and then, with a cat-like spring, leaped for the opening, and catching
its sides, drew his body up into the interior of the hut.

If he had expected opposition, he met with none, nor in the dimly
lighted interior could he at first distinguish any presence, though,
when his eyes became accustomed to the semi-darkness, he descried a
bundle of leaves and grasses lying against the opposite wall of the
structure. Crossing to these he tore them aside revealing the huddled
form of a terrified woman. Seizing her by a shoulder he drew her to a
sitting position.

“What has happened?” he demanded. “Where are the villagers? Where is my
mate?”

“Do not kill me! Do not kill me!” she cried. “It was not I. It was not
my fault.”

“I do not intend to kill you,” replied Tarzan. “Tell me the truth and
you shall be safe.”

“The Bolgani have taken them away,” cried the woman. “They came when the
sun was low upon the day that you arrived, and they were very angry, for
they had found the body of their fellow outside the gate of the Palace
of Diamonds. They knew that he had come here to our village, and no one
had seen him alive since he had departed from the palace. They came,
then, and threatened and tortured our people, until at last the warriors
told them all. I hid. I do not know why they did not find me. But at
last they went away, taking all the others with them; taking your mate,
too. They will never come back.”

“You think that the Bolgani will kill them?” asked Tarzan.

“Yes,” she replied, “they kill all who displease them.”

Alone, now, and relieved of the responsibility of La, Tarzan might
easily make his way by night through the valley of Opar and to safety
beyond the barrier. But perhaps such a thought never entered his head.
Gratitude and loyalty were marked characteristics of the ape-man. La had
saved him from the fanaticism and intrigue of her people. She had saved
him at a cost of all that was most dear to her, power and position,
peace and safety. She had jeopardized her life for him, and become an
exile from her own country. The mere fact then that the Bolgani had
taken her with the possible intention of slaying her, was not sufficient
for the ape-man. He must know whether or not she lived, and if she lived
he must devote his every energy to winning her release and her eventual
escape from the dangers of this valley.

Tarzan spent the day reconnoitering outside the palace grounds, seeking
an opportunity of gaining entrance without detection, but this he found
impossible inasmuch as there was never a moment that there were not
Gomangani or Bolgani in the outer garden. But with the approach of
darkness the great east gate was closed, and the inmates of the huts and
palace withdrew within their walls, leaving not even a single sentinel
without—a fact that indicated clearly that the Bolgani had no reason to
apprehend an attack. The subjugation of the Gomangani, then, was
apparently complete, and so the towering wall surrounding their palace,
which was more than sufficient to protect them from the inroads of
lions, was but the reminder of an ancient day when a once-powerful, but
now vanished, enemy threatened their peace and safety.

When darkness had finally settled Tarzan approached the gate, and
throwing the noose of his grass rope over one of the carved lions that
capped the gate posts, ascended quickly to the summit of the wall, from
where he dropped lightly into the garden below. To insure an avenue for
quick escape in the event that he found La, he unlatched the heavy gates
and swung them open. Then he crept stealthily toward the ivy-covered
east tower, which he had chosen after a day of investigation as offering
easiest ingress to the palace. The success of his plan hinged largely
upon the age and strength of the ivy which grew almost to the summit of
the tower, and, to his immense relief, he found that it would easily
support his weight.

Far above the ground, near the summit of the tower, he had seen from the
trees surrounding the palace an open window, which, unlike the balance
of those in this part of the palace, was without bars. Dim lights shone
from several of the tower windows, as from those of other parts of the
palace. Avoiding these lighted apertures, Tarzan ascended quickly,
though carefully, toward the unbarred window above, and as he reached it
and cautiously raised his eyes above the level of the sill, he was
delighted to find that it opened into an unlighted chamber, the interior
of which, however, was so shrouded in darkness that he could discern
nothing within. Drawing himself carefully to the level of the sill he
crept quietly into the apartment beyond. Groping through the blackness,
he cautiously made the rounds of the room, which he found to contain a
carved bedstead of peculiar design, a table, and a couple of benches.
Upon the bedstead were stuffs of woven material, thrown over the softly
tanned pelts of antelopes and leopards.

Opposite the window through which he had entered was a closed door. This
he opened slowly and silently, until, through a tiny aperture he could
look out upon a dimly lighted corridor or circular hallway, in the
center of which was an opening about four feet in diameter, passing
through which and disappearing beyond a similar opening in the ceiling
directly above was a straight pole with short crosspieces fastened to it
at intervals of about a foot—quite evidently the primitive staircase
which gave communication between the various floors of the tower. Three
upright columns, set at equal intervals about the circumference of the
circular opening in the center of the floor helped to support the
ceiling above. Around the outside of this circular hallway there were
other doors, similar to that opening into the apartment in which he was.

Hearing no noise and seeing no evidence of another than himself, Tarzan
opened the door and stepped into the hallway. His nostrils were now
assailed strongly by the same heavy fragrance of incense that had first
greeted him upon his approach to the palace several days before. In the
interior of the tower, however, it was much more powerful, practically
obliterating all other odors, and placing upon the ape-man an almost
prohibitive handicap in his search for La. In fact as he viewed the
doors upon this single stage of the tower, he was filled with
consternation at the prospect of the well-nigh impossible task that
confronted him. To search this great tower alone, without any assistance
whatever from his keen sense of scent, seemed impossible of
accomplishment, if he were to take even the most ordinary precautions
against detection.

The ape-man’s self-confidence was in no measure blundering egotism.
Knowing his limitations, he knew that he would have little or no chance
against even a few Bolgani were he to be discovered within their palace,
where all was familiar to them and strange to him. Behind him was the
open window, and the silent jungle night, and freedom. Ahead danger,
predestined failure; and, quite likely, death. Which should he choose?
For a moment he stood in silent thought, and then, raising his head and
squaring his great shoulders, he shook his black locks defiantly and
stepped boldly toward the nearest door. Room after room he had
investigated until he had made the entire circle of the landing, but in
so far as La or any clew to her were concerned his search was fruitless.
He found quaint furniture and rugs and tapestries, and ornaments of gold
and diamonds, and in one dimly lighted chamber he came upon a sleeping
Bolgani, but so silent were the movements of the ape-man that the
sleeper slept on undisturbed, even though Tarzan passed entirely around
his bed, which was set in the center of the chamber, and investigated a
curtained alcove beyond.

Having completed the rounds of this floor, Tarzan determined to work
upward first and then, returning, investigate the lower stages later.
Pursuant to this plan, therefore, he ascended the strange stairway.
Three landings he passed before he reached the upper floor of the tower.
Circling each floor was a ring of doors, all of which were closed, while
dimly lighting each landing were feebly burning cressets—shallow,
golden bowls—containing what appeared to be tallow, in which floated a
tow-like wick.

Upon the upper landing there were but three doors, all of which were
closed. The ceiling of this hallway was the dome-like roof of the tower,
in the center of which was another circular opening, through which the
stairway protruded into the darkness of the night above.

As Tarzan opened the door nearest him it creaked upon its hinges, giving
forth the first audible sound that had resulted from his investigations
up to this point. The interior of the apartment before him was
unlighted, and as Tarzan stood there in the entrance in statuesque
silence for a few seconds following the creaking of the hinge, he was
suddenly aware of movement—of the faintest shadow of a sound—behind
him. Wheeling quickly he saw the figure of a man standing in an open
doorway upon the opposite side of the landing.




                              CHAPTER XII
                           THE GOLDEN INGOTS


ESTEBAN MIRANDA had played the rôle of Tarzan of the Apes with the
Waziri as his audience for less than twenty-four hours when he began to
realize that, even with the lee-way that his supposedly injured brain
gave him, it was going to be a very difficult thing to carry on the
deception indefinitely. In the first place Usula did not seem at all
pleased at the idea of merely taking the gold away from the intruders
and then running from them. Nor did his fellow warriors seem any more
enthusiastic over the plan than he. As a matter of fact they could not
conceive that any number of bumps upon the head could render their
Tarzan of the Apes a coward, and to run away from these west coast
blacks and a handful of inexperienced whites seemed nothing less than
cowardly.

Following all this, there had occurred in the afternoon that which
finally decided the Spaniard that he was building for himself anything
other than a bed of roses, and that the sooner he found an excuse for
quitting the company of the Waziri the greater would be his life
expectancy.

They were passing through rather open jungle at the time. The brush was
not particularly heavy and the trees were at considerable distances
apart, when suddenly, without warning, a rhinoceros charged them. To the
consternation of the Waziri, Tarzan of the Apes turned and fled for the
nearest tree the instant his eyes alighted upon charging Buto. In his
haste Esteban tripped and fell, and when at last he reached the tree
instead of leaping agilely into the lower branches, he attempted to shin
up the huge bole as a schoolboy shins up a telegraph pole, only to slip
and fall back again to the ground.

In the meantime Buto, who charges either by scent or hearing, rather
than by eyesight, his powers of which are extremely poor, had been
distracted from his original direction by one of the Waziri, and after
missing the fellow had gone blundering on to disappear in the underbrush
beyond.

When Esteban finally arose and discovered that the rhinoceros was gone,
he saw surrounding him a semi-circle of huge blacks, upon whose faces
were written expressions of pity and sorrow, not unmingled, in some
instances, with a tinge of contempt. The Spaniard saw that he had been
terrified into a practically irreparable blunder, yet he seized
despairingly upon the only excuse he could conjure up.

“My poor head,” he cried, pressing both palms to his temples.

“The blow was upon your _head_, Bwana,” said Usula, “and your faithful
Waziri thought that it was the _heart_ of their master that knew no
fear.”

Esteban made no reply, and in silence they resumed their march. In
silence they continued until they made camp before dark upon the bank of
the river just above a waterfall. During the afternoon Esteban had
evolved a plan of escape from his dilemma, and no sooner had he made
camp than he ordered the Waziri to bury the treasure.

“We shall leave it here,” he said, “and tomorrow we shall set forth in
search of the thieves, for I have decided to punish them. They must be
taught that they may not come into the jungle of Tarzan with impunity.
It was only the injury to my head that prevented me from slaying them
immediately I discovered their perfidy.”

This attitude pleased the Waziri better. They commenced to see a ray of
hope. Once again was Tarzan of the Apes becoming Tarzan. And so it was
that with lighter hearts and a new cheerfulness they set forth the next
morning in search of the camp of the Englishmen, and by shrewd guessing
on Usula’s part they cut across the jungle to intercept the probable
line of march of the Europeans to such advantage that they came upon
them just as they were making camp that night. Long before they reached
them they smelled the smoke of their fires and heard the songs and
chatter of the west coast carriers.

Then it was that Esteban gathered the Waziri about him. “My children,”
he said, addressing Usula in English, “these strangers have come here to
wrong Tarzan. To Tarzan, then, belongs the vengeance. Go, therefore, and
leave me to punish my enemies alone and in my own way. Return home,
leave the gold where it is, for it will be a long time before I shall
need it.”

The Waziri were disappointed, for this new plan did not at all accord
with their desires, which contemplated a cheerful massacre of the west
coast blacks. But as yet the man before them was Tarzan, their big
Bwana, to whom they had never failed in implicit obedience. For a few
moments following Esteban’s declaration of his intention, they stood in
silence shifting uneasily, and then at last they commenced to speak to
one another in Waziri. What they said the Spaniard did not know, but
evidently they were urging something upon Usula, who presently turned
toward him.

“Oh, Bwana,” cried the black. “How can we return home to the Lady Jane
and tell her that we left you injured and alone to face the rifles of
the white men and their askari? Do not ask us to do it, Bwana. If you
were yourself we should not fear for your safety, but since the injury
to your head you have not been the same, and we fear to leave you alone
in the jungle. Let us, then, your faithful Waziri, punish these people,
after which we will take you home in safety, where you may be cured of
the evils that have fallen upon you.”

The Spaniard laughed. “I am entirely recovered,” he said, “and I am in
no more danger alone than I would be with you,” which he knew, even
better than they, was but a mild statement of the facts. “You will obey
my wishes,” he continued sternly. “Go back at once the way that we have
come. After you have gone at least two miles you may make camp for the
night, and in the morning start out again for home. Make no noise, I do
not want them to know that I am here. Do not worry about me. I am all
right, and I shall probably overtake you before you reach home. Go!”

Sorrowfully the Waziri turned back upon the trail they had just covered
and a moment later the last of them disappeared from the sight of the
Spaniard.

With a sigh of relief Esteban Miranda turned toward the camp of his own
people. Fearing that to surprise them suddenly might invite a volley of
shots from the askari he whistled, and then called aloud as he
approached.

“It is Tarzan!” cried the first of the blacks who saw him. “Now indeed
shall we all be killed.”

Esteban saw the growing excitement among the carriers and askari—he saw
the latter seize their rifles and that they were fingering the triggers
nervously.

“It is I, Esteban Miranda,” he called aloud. “Flora! Flora, tell those
fools to lay aside their rifles.”

The whites, too, were standing watching him, and at the sound of his
voice Flora turned toward the blacks. “It is all right,” she said, “that
is not Tarzan. Lay aside your rifles.”

Esteban entered the camp, smiling. “Here I am,” he said.

“We thought that you were dead,” said Kraski. “Some of these fellows
said that Tarzan said that he had killed you.”

“He captured me,” said Esteban, “but as you see he did not kill me. I
thought that he was going to, but he did not, and finally he turned me
loose in the jungle. He may have thought that I could not survive and
that he would accomplish his end just as surely without having my blood
upon his hands.”

“’E must have knowed you,” said Peebles. “You’d die, all right, if you
were left alone very long in the jungle—you’d starve to death.”

Esteban made no reply to the sally but turned toward Flora. “Are you not
glad to see me, Flora?” he asked.

The girl shrugged her shoulders. “What is the difference?” she asked.
“Our expedition is a failure. Some of them think you were largely to
blame.” She nodded her head in the general direction of the other
whites.

The Spaniard scowled. None of them cared very much to see him. He did
not care about the others, but he had hoped that Flora would show some
enthusiasm about his return. Well, if she had known what he had in his
mind, she might have been happier to see him, and only too glad to show
some kind of affection. But she did not know. She did not know that
Esteban Miranda had hidden the golden ingots where he might go another
day and get them. It had been his intention to persuade her to desert
the others, and then, later, the two would return and recover the
treasure, but now he was piqued and offended—none of them should have a
shilling of it—he would wait until they left Africa and then he would
return and take it all for himself. The only fly in the ointment was the
thought that the Waziri knew the location of the treasure, and that,
sooner or later, they would return with Tarzan and get it. This weak
spot in his calculations must be strengthened, and to strengthen it he
must have assistance which would mean sharing his secret with another,
but whom?

Outwardly oblivious of the sullen glances of his companions he took his
place among them. It was evident to him that they were far from being
glad to see him, but just why he did not know, for he had not heard of
the plan that Kraski and Owaza had hatched to steal the loot of the
ivory raiders, and that their main objection to his presence was the
fear that they would be compelled to share the loot with him. It was
Kraski who first voiced the thought that was in the minds of all but
Esteban.

“Miranda,” he said, “it is the consensus of opinion that you and Bluber
are largely responsible for the failure of our venture. We are not
finding fault. I just mention it as a fact. But since you have been away
we have struck upon a plan to take something out of Africa that will
partially recompense us for the loss of the gold. We have worked the
thing all out carefully and made our plans. We don’t need you to carry
them out. We have no objection to your coming along with us, if you want
to, for company, but we want to have it understood from the beginning
that you are not to share in anything that we get out of this.”

The Spaniard smiled and waved a gesture of unconcern. “It is perfectly
all right,” he said. “I shall ask for nothing. I would not wish to take
anything from any of you.” And he grinned inwardly as he thought of the
more than quarter of a million pounds in gold which he would one day
take out of Africa for himself, alone.

At this unexpected attitude of acquiescence upon Esteban’s part the
others were greatly relieved, and immediately the entire atmosphere of
constraint was removed.

“You’re a good fellow, Esteban,” said Peebles. “I’ve been sayin’ right
along that you’d want to do the right thing, and I want to say that I’m
mighty glad to see you back here safe an’ sound. I felt terrible when I
’eard you was croaked, that I did.”

“Yes,” said Bluber, “John he feel so bad he cry himself to sleep every
night, ain’t it, John?”

“Don’t try to start nothin’, Bluber,” growled Peebles, glaring at the
Jew.

“I vasn’t commencing to start nodding,” replied Adolph, seeing that the
big Englishman was angry; “of course ve vere all sorry dat ve t’ought
Esteban was killed und ve is all glad dot he is back.”

“And that he don’t want any of the swag,” added Throck.

“Don’t worry,” said Esteban, “If I get back to London I’ll be happy
enough—I’ve had enough of Africa to last me all the rest of my life.”

Before he could get to sleep that night, the Spaniard spent a wakeful
hour or two trying to evolve a plan whereby he might secure the gold
absolutely to himself, without fear of its being removed by the Waziri
later. He knew that he could easily find the spot where he had buried it
and remove it to another close by, provided that he could return
immediately over the trail along which Usula had led them that day, and
he could do this alone, insuring that no one but himself would know the
new location of the hiding place of the gold, but he was equally
positive that he could never again return later from the coast and find
where he had hidden it. This meant that he must share his secret with
another—one familiar with the country who could find the spot again at
any time and from any direction. But who was there whom he might trust!
In his mind he went carefully over the entire personnel of their safari,
and continually his mind reverted to a single individual—Owaza. He had
no confidence in the wily old scoundrel’s integrity, but there was no
other who suited his purpose as well, and finally he was forced to the
conclusion that he must share his secret with this black, and depend
upon avarice rather than honor for his protection. He could repay the
fellow well—make him rich beyond his wildest dreams, and this the
Spaniard could well afford to do in view of the tremendous fortune at
stake. And so he fell asleep dreaming of what gold, to the value of over
a quarter of a million pounds sterling, would accomplish in the gay
capitals of the world.

The following morning while they were breakfasting Esteban mentioned
casually that he had passed a large herd of antelope not far from their
camp the previous day, and suggested that he take four or five men and
do a little hunting, joining the balance of the party at camp that
night. No one raised any objection, possibly for the reason that they
assumed that the more he hunted and the further from the safari he went
the greater the chances of his being killed, a contingency that none of
them would have regretted, since at heart they had neither liking nor
trust for him.

“I will take Owaza,” he said. “He is the cleverest hunter of them all,
and five or six men of his choosing.” But later, when he approached
Owaza, the black interposed objections to the hunt.

“We have plenty of meat for two days,” he said. “Let us go on as fast as
we can, away from the land of the Waziri and Tarzan. I can find plenty
of game anywhere between here and the coast. March for two days, and
then I will hunt with you.”

“Listen,” said Esteban, in a whisper. “It is more than antelope that I
would hunt. I cannot tell you here in camp, but when we have left the
others I will explain. It will pay you better to come with me today than
all the ivory you can hope to get from the raiders.” Owaza cocked an
attentive ear and scratched his woolly head.

“It is a good day to hunt, Bwana,” he said. “I will come with you and
bring five boys.”

After Owaza had planned the march for the main party and arranged for
the camping place for the night, so that he and the Spaniard could find
them again, the hunting party set out upon the trail that Usula had
followed from the buried treasure the preceding day. They had not gone
far before Owaza discovered the fresh spoor of the Waziri.

“Many men passed here late yesterday,” he said to Esteban, eyeing the
Spaniard quizzically.

“I saw nothing of them,” replied the latter. “They must have come this
way after I passed.”

“They came almost to our camp, and then they turned about and went away
again,” said Owaza. “Listen, Bwana, I carry a rifle and you shall march
ahead of me. If these tracks were made by your people, and you are
leading me into ambush, you shall be the first to die.”

“Listen, Owaza,” said Esteban, “we are far enough from camp now so that
I may tell you all. These tracks were made by the Waziri of Tarzan of
the Apes, who buried the gold for me a day’s march from here. I have
sent them home, and I wish you to go back with me and move the gold to
another hiding place. After these others have gotten their ivory and
returned to England, you and I will come back and get the gold, and
then, indeed, shall you be well rewarded.”

“Who are you, then?” asked Owaza. “Often have I doubted that you are
Tarzan of the Apes. The day that we left the camp outside of Opar one of
my men told me that you had been poisoned by your own people and left in
the camp. He said that he saw it with his own eyes—your body lying
hidden behind some bushes—and yet you were with us upon the march that
day. I thought that he lied to me, but I saw the consternation in his
face when he saw you, and so I have often wondered if there were two
Tarzans of the Apes.”

“I am not Tarzan of the Apes,” said Esteban. “It was Tarzan of the Apes
who was poisoned in our camp by the others. But they only gave him
something that would put him to sleep for a long time, possibly with the
hope that he would be killed by wild animals before he awoke. Whether or
not he still lives we do not know. Therefore you have nothing to fear
from the Waziri or Tarzan on my account, Owaza, for I want to keep out
of their way even more than you.”

The black nodded. “Perhaps you speak the truth,” he said, but still he
walked behind, with his rifle always ready in his hand.

They went warily, for fear of overtaking the Waziri, but shortly after
passing the spot where the latter had camped they saw that they had
taken another route and that there was now no danger of coming in
contact with them.

When they had reached a point within about a mile of the spot where the
gold had been buried, Esteban told Owaza to have his boys remain there
while they went ahead alone to effect the transfer of the ingots.

“The fewer who know of this,” he said to the black, “the safer we shall
be.”

“The Bwana speaks words of wisdom,” replied the wily black.

Esteban found the spot near the waterfall without difficulty, and upon
questioning Owaza he discovered that the latter knew the location
perfectly, and would have no difficulty in coming directly to it again
from the coast. They transferred the gold but a short distance,
concealing it in a heavy thicket near the edge of the river, knowing
that it would be as safe from discovery there as though they had
transported it a hundred miles, for the chances were extremely slight
that the Waziri or anyone else who should learn of its original hiding
place would imagine that anyone would go to the trouble of removing it
but a matter of a hundred yards.

When they had finished Owaza looked at the sun.

“We will never reach camp tonight,” he said, “and we will have to travel
fast to overtake them even tomorrow.”

“I did not expect to,” replied Esteban, “but I could not tell them that.
If we never find them again I shall be satisfied.” Owaza grinned. In his
crafty mind an idea was formed.

“Why,” he thought, “risk death in a battle with the Arab ivory raiders
on the chance of securing a few tusks, when all this gold awaits only
transportation to the coast to be ours?”




[Illustration: Tarzan saw a white man, bald and old and shriveled with a
long white beard]




                              CHAPTER XIII
                         A STRANGE, FLAT TOWER


TARZAN, turning, discovered the man standing behind him on the top level
of the ivy-covered east tower of the Palace of Diamonds. His knife
leaped from its sheath at the touch of his quick fingers. But almost
simultaneously his hand dropped to his side, and he stood contemplating
the other, with an expression of incredulity upon his face that but
reflected a similar emotion registered upon the countenance of the
stranger. For what Tarzan saw was no Bolgani, nor a Gomangani, but a
white man, bald and old and shriveled, with a long, white beard—a white
man, naked but for barbaric ornaments of gold spangles and diamonds.

“God!” exclaimed the strange apparition.

Tarzan eyed the other quizzically. That single English word opened up
such tremendous possibilities for conjecture as baffled the mind of the
ape-man.

“What are you? Who are you?” continued the old man, but this time in the
dialect of the great apes.

“You used an English word a moment ago,” said Tarzan. “Do you speak that
language?” Tarzan himself spoke in English.

“Ah, dear God!” cried the old man, “that I should have lived to hear
that sweet tongue again.” And he, too, now spoke in English, halting
English, as might one who was long unaccustomed to voicing the language.

“Who are you?” asked Tarzan, “and what are you doing here?”

“It is the same question that I asked you,” replied the old man. “Do not
be afraid to answer me. You are evidently an Englishman, and you have
nothing to fear from me.”

“I am here after a woman, captured by the Bolgani,” replied Tarzan.

The other nodded. “Yes,” he said, “I know. She is here.”

“Is she safe?” asked Tarzan.

“She has not been harmed. She will be safe until tomorrow or the next
day,” replied the old man. “But who are you, and how did you find your
way here from the outer world?”

“I am Tarzan of the Apes,” replied the ape-man. “I came into this valley
looking for a way out of the valley of Opar where the life of my
companion was in danger. And you?”

“I am an old man,” replied the other, “and I have been here ever since I
was a boy. I was a stowaway on the ship that brought Stanley to Africa
after the establishment of the station on Stanley Pool, and I came into
the interior with him. I went out from camp to hunt, alone, one day. I
lost my way and later was captured by unfriendly natives. They took me
farther into the interior to their village from which I finally escaped,
but so utterly confused and lost that I had no idea what direction to
take to find a trail to the coast. I wandered thus for months, until
finally, upon an accursed day I found an entrance to this valley. I do
not know why they did not put me to death at once, but they did not, and
later they discovered that my knowledge could be turned to advantage to
them. Since then I have helped them in their quarrying and mining and in
their diamond cutting. I have given them iron drills with hardened
points and drills tipped with diamonds. Now I am practically one of
them, but always in my heart has been the hope that some day I might
escape from the valley—a hopeless hope, though, I may assure you.”

“There is no way out?” asked Tarzan.

“There is a way, but it is always guarded.”

“Where is it?” queried Tarzan.

“It is a continuation of one of the mine tunnels, passing entirely
through the mountain to the valley beyond. The mines have been worked by
the ancestors of this race for an almost incalculable length of time.
The mountains are honeycombed with their shafts and tunnels. Back of the
gold-bearing quartz lies an enormous deposit of altered peridotite,
which contains diamonds, in the search for which it evidently became
necessary to extend one of the shafts to the opposite side of the
mountain, possibly for purposes of ventilation. This tunnel and the
trail leading down into Opar are the only means of ingress to the
valley. From time immemorial they have kept the tunnel guarded, more
particularly, I imagine, to prevent the escape of slaves than to thwart
the inroads of an enemy, since they believe that there is no fear of the
latter emergency. The trail to Opar they do not guard, because they no
longer fear the Oparians, and know quite well that none of their
Gomangani slaves would dare enter the valley of the sunworshipers. For
the same reason, then, that the slaves cannot escape, we, too, must
remain prisoners here forever.”

“How is the tunnel guarded?” asked Tarzan.

“Two Bolgani and a dozen or more Gomangani warriors are always upon duty
there,” replied the old man.

“The Gomangani would like to escape?”

“They have tried it many times in the past, I am told,” replied the old
man, “though never since I have lived here, and always they were caught
and tortured. And all their race was punished and worked the harder
because of these attempts upon the part of a few.”

“They are numerous—the Gomangani?”

“There are probably five thousand of them in the valley,” replied the
old man.

“And how many Bolgani?” the ape-man asked.

“Between ten and eleven hundred.”

“Five to one,” murmured Tarzan, “and yet they are afraid to attempt to
escape.”

“But you must remember,” said the old man, “that the Bolgani are the
dominant and intelligent race—the others are intellectually little
above the beasts of the forest.”

“Yet they are men,” Tarzan reminded him.

“In figure only,” replied the old man. “They cannot band together as men
do. They have not as yet reached the community plane of evolution. It is
true that families reside in a single village, but that idea, together
with their weapons, was given to them by the Bolgani that they might not
be entirely exterminated by the lions and panthers. Formerly, I am told,
each individual Gomangani, when he became old enough to hunt for
himself, constructed a hut apart from others and took up his solitary
life, there being at that time no slightest semblance of family life.
Then the Bolgani taught them how to build palisaded villages and
compelled the men and women to remain in them and rear their children to
maturity, after which the children were required to remain in the
village, so that now some of the communities can claim as many as forty
or fifty people. But the death rate is high among them, and they cannot
multiply as rapidly as people living under normal conditions of peace
and security. The brutalities of the Bolgani kill many; the carnivora
take a considerable toll.”

“Five to one, and still they remain in slavery—what cowards they must
be,” said the ape-man.

“On the contrary, they are far from cowardly,” replied the old man.
“They will face a lion with the utmost bravery. But for so many ages
have they been subservient to the will of the Bolgani, that it has
become a fixed habit in them—as the fear of God is inherent in us, so
is the fear of the Bolgani inherent in the minds of the Gomangani from
birth.”

“It is interesting,” said Tarzan. “But tell me now where the woman is of
whom I have come in search.”

“She is your mate?” asked the old man.

“No,” replied Tarzan. “I told the Gomangani that she was, so that they
would protect her. She is La, queen of Opar, High Priestess of the
Flaming God.”

The old man looked his incredulity. “Impossible!” he cried. “It cannot
be that the queen of Opar has risked her life by coming to the home of
her hereditary enemies.”

“She was forced to it,” replied Tarzan, “her life being threatened by a
part of her people because she had refused to sacrifice me to their
god.”

“If the Bolgani knew this there would be great rejoicing,” replied the
old man.

“Tell me where she is,” demanded Tarzan. “She preserved me from her
people, and I must save her from whatever fate the Bolgani contemplate
for her.”

“It is hopeless,” said the old man. “I can tell you where she is, but
you cannot rescue her.”

“I can try,” replied the ape-man.

“But you will fail and die.”

“If what you tell me is true, that there is absolutely no chance of my
escaping from the valley, I might as well die,” replied the ape-man.
“However, I do not agree with you.”

The old man shrugged. “You do not know the Bolgani,” he said.

“Tell me where the woman is,” said Tarzan.

“Look,” replied the old man, motioning Tarzan to follow him into his
apartment, and approaching a window which faced toward the west, he
pointed towards a strange flat tower which rose above the roof of the
main building near the west end of the palace. “She is probably
somewhere in the interior of that tower,” said the old man to Tarzan,
“but as far as you are concerned, she might as well be at the north
pole.”

Tarzan stood in silence for a moment, his keen eyes taking in every
salient detail of the prospect before him. He saw the strange,
flat-topped tower, which it seemed to him might be reached from the roof
of the main building. He saw, too, branches of the ancient trees that
sometimes topped the roof itself, and except for the dim light shining
through some of the palace windows he saw no signs of life. He turned
suddenly upon the old man.

“I do not know you,” he said, “but I believe that I may trust you, since
after all blood ties are strong, and we are the only men of our race in
this valley. You might gain something in favor by betraying me, but I
cannot believe that you will do it.”

“Do not fear,” said the old man, “I hate them. If I could help you I
would, but I know that there is no hope of success for whatever plan you
may have in mind—the woman will never be rescued; you will never leave
the Valley of the Palace of Diamonds—you will never leave the palace
itself unless the Bolgani wish it.”

The ape-man grinned. “You have been here so long,” he said, “that you
are beginning to assume the attitude of mind that keeps the Gomangani in
perpetual slavery. If you want to escape, come with me. We may not
succeed, but at least you will have a better chance if you try than as
if you remained forever in this tower.”

The old man shook his head. “No,” he said, “it is hopeless. If escape
had been possible I should have been away from here long ago.”

“Good-bye then,” said Tarzan, and swinging out of the window he
clambered toward the roof below, along the stout stem of the old ivy.

The old man watched him for a moment until he saw him make his way
carefully across the roof toward the flat-topped tower where he hoped to
find and liberate La. Then the old fellow turned and hurried rapidly
down the crude stairway that rose ladder-like to the center of the
tower.

Tarzan made his way across the uneven roof of the main building,
clambering up the sides of its higher elevations and dropping again to
its lower levels as he covered a considerable distance between the east
tower and that flat-topped structure of peculiar design in which La was
supposed to be incarcerated. His progress was slow, for he moved with
the caution of a beast of prey, stopping often in dense shadows to
listen.

When at last he reached the tower, he found that it had many openings
letting upon the roof—openings which were closed only with hangings of
the heavy tapestried stuff which he had seen in the tower. Drawing one
of these slightly aside he looked within upon a large chamber, bare of
furnishings, from the center of which there protruded through a circular
aperture the top of a stairway similar to that he had ascended in the
east tower. There was no one in sight within the chamber, and Tarzan
crossed immediately to the stairway. Peering cautiously into the opening
Tarzan saw that the stairway descended for a great distance, passing
many floors. How far it went he could not judge, except it seemed likely
that it pierced subterranean chambers beneath the palace. Sounds of life
came up to him through the shaft, and odors, too, but the latter largely
nullified, in so far as the scent impressions which they offered Tarzan
were concerned, by the heavy incense which pervaded the entire palace.

It was this perfume that was to prove the ape-man’s undoing, for
otherwise his keen nostrils would have detected the scent of a near-by
Gomangani. The fellow lay behind one of the hangings at an aperture in
the tower wall. He had been lying in such a position that he had seen
Tarzan enter the chamber, and he was watching him now as the ape-man
stood looking down the shaft of the stairway. The eyes of the black had
at first gone wide in terror at sight of this strange apparition, the
like of which he had never seen before. Had the creature been of
sufficient intelligence to harbor superstition, he would have thought
Tarzan a god descended from above. But being of too low an order to
possess any imagination whatsoever, he merely knew that he saw a strange
creature, and that all strange creatures must be enemies, he was
convinced. His duty was to apprise his masters of this presence in the
palace, but he did not dare to move until the apparition had reached a
sufficient distance from him to insure that the movements of the
Gomangani would not be noticed by the intruder—he did not care to call
attention to himself, for he had found that the more one effaced oneself
in the presence of the Bolgani, the less one was likely to suffer. For a
long time the stranger peered down the shaft of the stairway, and for a
long time the Gomangani lay quietly watching him. But at last the former
descended the stairs and passed out of sight of the watcher, who
immediately leaped to his feet and scurried away across the roof of the
palace toward a large tower arising at its western end.

As Tarzan descended the ladder the fumes of the incense became more and
more annoying. Where otherwise he might have investigated quickly by
scent he was now compelled to listen for every sound, and in many cases
to investigate the chambers opening upon the central corridor by
entering them. Where the doors were locked, he lay flat and listened
close to the aperture at their base. On several occasions he risked
calling La by name, but in no case did he receive any reply.

He had investigated four landings and was descending to the fifth when
he saw standing in one of the doorways upon this level an evidently much
excited and possibly terrified black. The fellow was of giant
proportions and entirely unarmed. He stood looking at the ape-man with
wide eyes as the latter jumped lightly from the stairway and stood
facing him upon the same level.

“What do you want?” finally stammered the black. “Are you looking for
the white she, your mate, whom the Bolgani took?”

“Yes,” replied Tarzan. “What do you know of her?”

“I know where she is hidden,” replied the black, “and if you will follow
me I will lead you to her.”

“Why do you offer to do this for me?” asked Tarzan, immediately
suspicious. “Why is it that you do not go at once to your masters and
tell them that I am here that they may send men to capture me?”

“I do not know the reason that I was sent to tell you this,” replied the
black. “The Bolgani sent me. I did not wish to come for I was afraid.”

“Where did they tell you to lead me?” asked Tarzan.

“I am to lead you into a chamber, the door of which will be immediately
bolted upon us. You will then be a prisoner.”

“And you?” inquired Tarzan.

“I, too, shall be a prisoner with you. The Bolgani do not care what
becomes of me. Perhaps you will kill me, but they do not care.”

“If you lead me into a trap I shall kill you,” replied Tarzan. “But if
you lead me to the woman perhaps we shall all escape. You would like to
escape, would you not?”

“I should like to escape, but I cannot.”

“Have you ever tried?”

“No, I have not. Why should I try to do something that cannot be done?”

“If you lead me into the trap I shall surely kill you. If you lead me to
the woman, you at least have the chance that I do to live. Which will
you do?”

The black scratched his head in thought, the idea slowly filtering
through his stupid mind. At last he spoke.

“You are very wise,” he said. “I will lead you to the woman.”

“Go ahead, then,” said Tarzan, “and I will follow you.”

The black descended to the next level and opening the door entered a
long, straight corridor. As the ape-man followed his guide he had
leisure to reflect upon the means through which the Bolgani had learned
of his presence in the tower, and the only conclusion he could arrive at
was that the old man had betrayed him, since in so far as Tarzan was
aware he alone knew that the ape-man was in the palace. The corridor
along which the black was leading him was very dark, receiving a dim and
inadequate illumination from the dimly lighted corridor they had just
left, the door into which remained open behind them. Presently the black
stopped, before a closed door.

“The woman is in there,” said the black, pointing to the door.

“She is alone?” asked Tarzan.

“No,” replied the black. “Look,” and he opened the door, revealing a
heavy hanging, which he gently separated, revealing to Tarzan the
interior of the chamber beyond.

Seizing the black by the wrist, that he might not escape, Tarzan stepped
forward and put his eyes to the aperture. Before him lay a large
chamber, at one end of which was a raised dais, the base of which was of
a dark, ornately carved wood. The central figure upon this dais was a
huge, black-maned lion—the same that Tarzan had seen escorted through
the gardens of the palace. His golden chains were now fastened to rings
in the floor, while the four blacks stood in statuesque rigidity, two
upon either side of the beast. Upon golden thrones behind the lion sat
three magnificently ornamented Bolgani. At the foot of the steps leading
to the stair stood La, between two Gomangani guards. Upon either side of
a central aisle were carved benches facing the dais, and occupying the
front section of these were some fifty Bolgani, among whom Tarzan almost
immediately espied the little, old man that he had met in the tower, the
sight of whom instantly crystallized the ape-man’s conviction of the
source of his betrayal.

The chamber was lighted by hundreds of cressets, burning a substance
which gave forth both light and the heavy incense that had assailed
Tarzan’s nostrils since first he entered the domain of the Bolgani. The
long, cathedralesque windows upon one side of the apartment were thrown
wide, admitting the soft air of the jungle summer night. Through them
Tarzan could see the palace grounds and that this chamber was upon the
same level as the terrace upon which the palace stood. Beyond those
windows was an open gate-way to the jungle and freedom, but interposed
between him and the windows were fifty armed gorilla-men. Perhaps, then,
strategy would be a better weapon than force with which to carve his way
to freedom with La. Yet to the forefront of his mind was evidently a
belief in the probability that in the end it would be force rather than
strategy upon which he must depend. He turned to the black at his side.

“Would the Gomangani guarding the lion like to escape from the Bolgani?”
he asked.

“The Gomangani would all escape if they could,” replied the black.

“If it is necessary for me to enter the room, then,” said Tarzan to the
black, “will you accompany me and tell the other Gomangani that if they
will fight for me I will take them out of the valley?”

“I will tell them, but they will not believe,” replied the black.

“Tell them that they will die if they do not help me, then,” said
Tarzan.

“I will tell them.”

As Tarzan turned his attention again to the chamber before him he saw
that the Bolgani occupying the central golden throne was speaking.

“Nobles of Numa, King of Beasts, Emperor of All Created Things,” he said
in deep, growling tones, “Numa has heard the words that this she has
spoken, and it is the will of Numa that she die. The Great Emperor is
hungry. He, himself, will devour her here in the presence of his Nobles
and the Imperial Council of Three. It is the will of Numa.”

A growl of approval arose from the beast-like audience, while the great
lion bared his hideous fangs and roared until the palace trembled, his
wicked, yellow-green eyes fixed terribly upon the woman before him,
evidencing the fact that these ceremonies were of sufficient frequency
to have accustomed the lion to what he might expect as the logical
termination of them.

“Day after tomorrow,” continued the speaker, “the mate of this creature,
who is by this time safely imprisoned in the Tower of the Emperors, will
be brought before Numa for judgment. Slaves,” he cried suddenly in a
loud voice, rising to his feet and glaring at the guards holding La,
“drag the woman to your emperor.”

Instantly the lion became frantic, lashing its tail and straining at its
stout chains, roaring and snarling as it reared upon its hind feet and
sought to leap upon La, who was now being forcibly conducted up the
steps of the dais toward the bejeweled man-eater so impatiently awaiting
her.

She did not cry out in terror, but she sought to twist herself free from
the detaining hands of the powerful Gomangani—all futilely, however.

They had reached the last step, and were about to push La into the claws
of the lion, when they were arrested by a loud cry from one side of the
chamber—a cry that halted the Gomangani and brought the assembled
Bolgani to their feet in astonishment and anger, for the sight that met
their eyes was well qualified to arouse the latter within them. Leaping
into the room with raised spear was the almost naked white man of whom
they had heard, but whom none of them had as yet seen. And so quick was
he that in the very instant of entry—even before they could rise to
their feet—he had launched his spear.




                              CHAPTER XIV
                         THE CHAMBER OF HORRORS


A BLACK-MANED lion moved through the jungle night. With majestic
unconcern for all other created things he took his lordly way through
the primeval forest. He was not hunting, for he made no efforts toward
stealth, nor, on the other hand, did he utter any vocal sound. He moved
swiftly, though sometimes stopping with uplifted nose to scent the air
and to listen. And thus at last he came to a high wall, along the face
of which he sniffed, until the wall was broken by a half-opened gateway,
through which he passed into the enclosure.

Before him loomed a great building, and presently as he stood watching
it and listening, there broke from the interior the thunderous roar of
an angry lion.

He of the black mane cocked his head upon one side and moved stealthily
forward.

At the very instant that La was about to be thrust into the clutches of
Numa, Tarzan of the Apes leaped into the apartment with a loud cry that
brought to momentary pause the Gomangani that were dragging her to her
doom, and in that brief instant of respite which the ape-man knew would
follow his interruption the swift spear was launched. To the rage and
consternation of the Bolgani they saw it bury itself in the heart of
their Emperor—the great, black-maned lion.

At Tarzan’s side stood the Gomangani whom he had terrified into service,
and as Tarzan rushed forward toward La the black accompanied him, crying
to his fellows that if they would help this stranger they might be free
and escape from the Bolgani forever.

“You have permitted the great Emperor to be slain,” he cried to the poor
Gomangani who guarded Numa. “For this the Bolgani will kill you. Help to
save the strange Tarmangani and his mate and you have at least a chance
for life and freedom. And you,” he added, addressing the two who had
been guarding La, “they will hold you responsible also—your only hope
lies with us.”

Tarzan had reached La’s side and was dragging her up the steps of the
dais where he hoped that he might make a momentary stand against the
fifty Bolgani who were now rushing forward from their seats toward him.

“Slay the three who sit upon the dais,” cried Tarzan to the Gomangani,
who were now evidently hesitating as to which side they would cast their
lot with. “Slay them if you wish your freedom! Slay them if you wish to
live!”

The authoritative tones of his voice, the magnetic appeal of his
personality, his natural leadership won them to him for the brief
instant that was necessary to turn them upon the hated authority that
the three Bolgani upon the dais represented, and as they drove their
spears into the shaggy black bodies of their masters they became then
and forever the creatures of Tarzan of the Apes, for there could be no
future hope for them in the land of the Bolgani.

With one arm around La’s waist the ape-man carried her to the summit of
the dais, where he seized his spear and drew it from the body of the
dead lion. Then, turning about, and facing the advancing Bolgani, he
placed one foot upon the carcass of his kill and raised his voice in the
terrifying victory cry of the apes of Kerchak.

Before him the Bolgani paused, behind him the Gomangani quailed in
terror.

“Stop!” cried Tarzan, raising a palm toward the Bolgani. “Listen! I am
Tarzan of the Apes. I sought no quarrel with your people. I but look for
a passage through your country to my own. Let me go my way in peace with
this woman, taking these Gomangani with me.”

For answer a chorus of savage growls arose from the Bolgani as they
started forward again toward the dais. From their ranks there suddenly
leaped the old man of the east tower, who ran swiftly toward Tarzan.

“Ah, traitor,” cried the ape-man, “you would be the first, then, to
taste the wrath of Tarzan?” He spoke in English and the old man replied
ill the same tongue.

“Traitor?” he exclaimed in surprise.

“Yes, traitor,” thundered Tarzan. “Did you not hurry here to tell the
Bolgani that I was in the palace, that they might send the Gomangani to
lure me to a trap?”

“I did nothing of the kind,” replied the other. “I came here to place
myself near the white woman, with the thought that I might be of service
to her or you if I were needed. I come now, Englishman, to stand at your
side and die at your side, for die you shall, as sure as there is a God
in heaven. Nothing can save you now from the wrath of the Bolgani whose
Emperor you have killed.”

“Come, then,” cried Tarzan, “and prove your loyalty. It were better to
die now than to live in slavery forever.”

The six Gomangani had ranged themselves, three upon either side of
Tarzan and La, while the seventh, who had entered the chamber with
Tarzan unarmed, was taking weapons from the body of one of the three
Bolgani who had been slain upon the dais.

Before this array of force so new to them, the Bolgani paused at the
foot of the steps leading to the dais. But only for a moment they
paused, for there were but nine against fifty, and as they surged up the
steps, Tarzan and his Gomangani met them with battle-ax, and spear, and
bludgeon. For a moment they pressed them back, but the numbers against
them were too great, and once again a wave swept up that seemed likely
to overwhelm them, when there broke upon the ears of the contestants a
frightful roar, which, coming from almost at their sides, brought a
sudden, momentary cessation of the battle.

Turning their eyes in the direction of the sound they saw a huge,
black-maned lion standing upon the floor of the apartment, just within
one of the windows. For an instant he stood like a statue of golden
bronze, and then again the building trembled to the reverberations of
his mighty roar.

Towering above them all Tarzan of the Apes looked down from the dais
upon the great beast below him, and then in quick elation he raised his
voice above the growlings of the Bolgani.

“Jad-bal-ja,” he cried, and pointing toward the Bolgani, “Kill! Kill!”

Scarcely had the words been uttered ere the huge monster, a veritable
devil incarnate, was upon the hairy gorilla-men. And simultaneously
there occurred to the mind of the ape-man a daring plan of salvation for
himself and the others who were dependent upon him.

“Quick,” he cried to the Gomangani, “fall upon the Bolgani. Here at last
is the true Numa, King of Beasts, and ruler of all creation. He slays
his enemies but he will protect Tarzan of the Apes and the Gomangani,
who are his friends.”

Seeing their hated masters falling back before the terrific onslaughts
of the lion, the Gomangani rushed in with battle-axes and clubs, while
Tarzan, casting aside his spear, took his place among them with drawn
knife, and, keeping close to Jad-bal-ja, directed the lion from one
victim to another, lest he fall by mistake upon the Gomangani or the
little, old, white man, or even La, herself. Twenty of the Bolgani lay
dead upon the floor before the balance managed to escape from the
chamber, and then Tarzan, turning to Jad-bal-ja, called him to heel.

“Go!” he said, turning toward the Gomangani, “and drag the body of the
false Numa from the dais. Remove it from the room, for the true Emperor
has come to claim his throne.”

The old man and La were eyeing Tarzan and the lion in amazement.

“Who are you,” asked the former, “that you can work such miracles with a
savage beast of the jungle? Who are you, and what do you intend to do?”

“Wait and see,” said Tarzan with a grim smile. “I think that we shall
all be safe now, and that the Gomangani may live in comfort for a long
time hereafter.”

When the blacks had removed the carcass of the lion from the dais and
thrown it from one of the windows of the chamber, Tarzan sent Jad-bal-ja
to sit in the place upon the dais that had formerly been occupied by the
lion, Numa.

“There,” he said, turning to the Gomangani, “you see the true Emperor,
who does not have to be chained to his throne. Three of you will go to
the huts of your people behind the palace and summon them to the throne
room, that they, too, may see what has transpired. Hurry, that we may
have many warriors here before the Bolgani return in force.”

Filled with an excitement which almost shook their dull minds into a
semblance of intelligence three of the Gomangani hastened to do Tarzan’s
bidding, while the others stood gazing at Tarzan with expressions of
such awe that might only be engendered by the sight of deity. La came
then and stood beside Tarzan, looking up into his face with eyes that
reflected a reverence fully as deep as that held by the blacks.

“I have not thanked you, Tarzan of the Apes,” she said, “for what you
have risked and done for me. I know that you must have come here in
search of me, to save me from these creatures, and I know that it was
not love that impelled you to this heroic and well-nigh hopeless act.
That you have succeeded thus far is little short of miraculous, but I,
in the legends of whose people are recounted the exploits of the
Bolgani, know that there can be no hope of eventual escape for us all,
and so I beseech that you go at once and make good your escape alone, if
possible, for you alone of us have any possible chance of escape.”

“I do not agree with you that we have no chance to escape, La,” replied
the ape-man. “It seems to me that now we not only have every reason to
believe that we are practically assured of escape, but that we may
insure also to these poor Gomangani freedom from slavery and from the
tyranny of the Bolgani. But this is not all. With this I shall not be
satisfied. Not only must these people who show no hospitality to
strangers be punished, but your own disloyal priests as well. To this
latter end I intend to march out of the Valley of the Palace of
Diamonds, down upon the city of Opar with a force of Gomangani
sufficient to compel Cadj to relinquish the power he has usurped and
replace you upon the throne of Opar. Nothing less than this shall
satisfy me, and nothing less than this shall I accomplish before I
leave.”

“You are a brave man,” said the old man, “and you have succeeded beyond
what I thought could be possible, but La is right, you do not know the
ferocity or the resources of the Bolgani, or the power which they wield
over the Gomangani. Could you raise from the stupid minds of the blacks
the incubus of fear that rests so heavily upon them you might win over a
sufficient number to make good your escape from the valley, but that, I
fear, is beyond even you. Our only hope, therefore, is to escape from
the palace while they are momentarily disorganized, and trust to
fleetness and to luck to carry us beyond the limits of the valley before
we are apprehended.”

“See,” cried La, pointing; “even now it is too late—they return.”

Tarzan looked in the direction that she indicated and saw through the
open doorway at the far end of the chamber a large number of gorilla-men
approaching. His eyes moved swiftly to the windows in the other wall.
“But wait,” he said, “behold another factor in the equation!”

The others looked toward the windows which opened upon the terrace, and
they saw beyond them what appeared to be a crowd of several hundred
blacks running rapidly toward the windows. The other blacks upon the
dais cried out excitedly: “They come! They come! We shall be free, and
no longer shall the Bolgani be able to make us work until we drop from
exhaustion, or beat us, or torture us, or feed us to Numa.”

As the first of the Bolgani reached the doorway leading into the
chamber, the Gomangani commenced to pour through the several windows in
the opposite wall. They were led by the three who had been sent to fetch
them, and to such good effect had these carried their message that the
blacks already seemed like a new people, so transfigured were they by
the thought of immediate freedom. At sight of them the leader of the
Bolgani cried aloud for them to seize the intruders upon the dais, but
his answer was a spear hurled by the nearest black, and as he lunged
forward, dead, the battle was on.

The Bolgani in the palace greatly outnumbered the blacks, but the latter
had the advantage of holding the interior of the throne room in
sufficient numbers to prevent the entry of many Bolgani simultaneously.
Tarzan, immediately he recognized the temper of the blacks, called
Jad-bal-ja to follow him, and, descending from the dais, he took command
of the Gomangani. At each opening he placed sufficient men to guard it,
and at the center of the room he held the balance in reserve. Then he
called the old man into consultation.

“The gate in the east wall is open,” he said. “I left it so when I
entered. Would it be possible for twenty or thirty blacks to reach it in
safety and, entering the forest, carry word to the villagers of what is
transpiring here in the palace, and prevail upon them to send all of
their warriors immediately to complete the work of emancipation that we
have begun?”

“It is an excellent plan,” replied the old man. “The Bolgani are not
upon that side of the palace between us and the gate, and if it may ever
be accomplished, now is the time. I will pick your men for you. They
must be head-men, whose words will carry some weight with the villagers
outside the palace walls.”

“Good!” exclaimed Tarzan. “Select them immediately; tell them what we
want and urge upon them the necessity for haste.”

One by one the old man chose thirty warriors, whose duty he carefully
explained to each. They were delighted with the plan and assured Tarzan
that in less than an hour the first of the reinforcements would come.

“As you leave the enclosure,” said the ape-man, “destroy the lock if you
can, so that the Bolgani may not lock it again and bar out our
reinforcements. Carry also the word that the first who come are to
remain outside the wall until a sufficient number have arrived to make
entry into the palace grounds reasonably safe—at least as many as are
within this room now.”

The blacks signified their understanding, and a moment later passed out
of the room through one of the windows and disappeared into the darkness
of the night beyond.

Shortly after the blacks had left the Bolgani made a determined rush
upon the Gomangani guarding the main entrance to the throne room, with
the result that a score or more of the gorilla-men succeeded in cutting
their way into the room. At this first indication of reversal the blacks
showed signs of faltering, the fear of the Bolgani that was inherent in
them showing in their wavering attitude and seeming reluctance to force
a counter attack. As Tarzan leaped forward to assist in checking the
rush of the Bolgani into the throne room he called to Jad-bal-ja, and as
the great lion leaped from the dais the ape-man, pointing to the nearest
Bolgani, cried: “Kill! Kill!”

Straight for the throat of the nearest leaped Jad-bal-ja. The great jaws
closed upon the snarling face of the frightened gorilla-man but once,
and then, at the command of his master the golden lion dropped the
carcass after a single shake and leaped upon another. Three had died
thus in quick succession when the balance of the Bolgani turned to flee
this chamber of horrors; but the Gomangani, their confidence restored by
the ease with which this fierce ally brought death and terror to the
tyrants, interposed themselves between the Bolgani and the doorway,
shutting off their retreat.

“Hold them! Hold them!” cried Tarzan. “Do not kill them!” And then to
the Bolgani: “Surrender and you will not be harmed!”

Jad-bal-ja clung close to the side of his master, glaring and growling
at the Bolgani, and casting an occasional beseeching look at the ape-man
which said plainer than words, “Send me among them.”

Fifteen of the Bolgani who had entered the room survived. For a moment
they hesitated, and then one of them threw his weapons upon the floor.
Immediately the others followed suit.

Tarzan turned toward Jad-bal-ja. “Back!” he said, pointing toward the
dais, and as the lion wheeled and slunk away toward the platform, Tarzan
turned again toward the Bolgani.

“Let one of your number go,” he said, “and announce to your fellows that
I demand their immediate surrender.”

The Bolgani whispered among themselves for a few moments and finally one
of them announced that he would go and see the others. After he had left
the room the old man approached Tarzan.

“They will never surrender,” he said. “Look out for treachery.”

“It is all right,” said Tarzan. “I am expecting that, but I am gaining
time, and that is what we need most. If there were a place near where I
might confine these others I should feel better, for it would cut down
our antagonists by at least that many.”

“There is a room there,” said the old man, pointing toward one of the
doorways in the throne room, “where you can confine them—there are many
such rooms in the Tower of the Emperors.”

“Good,” said Tarzan, and a moment later, following his instructions the
Bolgani were safely locked in a room adjoining the throne room. In the
corridors without they could hear the main body of the gorilla-men in
argument. It was evident that they were discussing the message sent to
them by Tarzan. Fifteen minutes passed, and finally thirty, with no word
from the Bolgani and no resumption of hostilities, and then there came
to the main entrance of the throne room the fellow whom Tarzan had
despatched with his demand for surrender.

“Well,” asked the ape-man, “what is their answer?”

“They will not surrender,” replied the Bolgani, “but they will permit
you to leave the valley provided that you will release those whom you
have taken prisoner and harm no others.”

The ape-man shook his head. “That will not do,” he replied. “I hold the
power to crush the Bolgani of the Valley of Diamonds. Look,” and he
pointed toward Jad-bal-ja, “here is the true Numa. The creature you had
upon your throne was but a wild beast, but this is Numa, King of Beasts,
Emperor of All Created Things. Look at him. Must he be held in leash by
golden chains like some prisoner or slave? No! He is indeed an Emperor.
But there is one yet greater than he, one from whom he takes commands.
And that one is I, Tarzan of the Apes. Anger me and you shall feel not
only the wrath of Numa, but the wrath of Tarzan, as well. The Gomangani
are my people, the Bolgani shall be my slaves. Go and tell your fellows
that, and that if they would live at all they had best come soon and sue
for mercy. Go!”

When the messenger had again departed Tarzan looked at the old man, who
was eyeing him with an expression which might have denoted either awe or
reverence, were it not for the vaguest hint of a twinkle in the corners
of the eyes. The ape-man breathed a deep sigh of relief. “That will give
us at least another half hour,” he said.

“We shall need it, and more, too,” replied the old man, “though, at
that, you have accomplished more than I had thought possible, for at
least you have put a doubt in the minds of the Bolgani, who never before
have had cause to question their own power.”

Presently from the outer corridors the sounds of argument and discussion
gave place to that of movement among the Bolgani. A company, comprising
some fifty of the gorilla-men, took post directly outside the main
entrance of the throne room where they stood in silence, their weapons
ready, as though for the purpose of disputing any effort upon the part
of the inmates of the room to escape. Beyond them the balance of the
gorilla-men could be seen moving away and disappearing through doorways
and corridors leading from the main hallway of the palace. The
Gomangani, together with La and the old man, watched impatiently for the
coming of the black reinforcements, while Tarzan sat upon the edge of
the dais half-reclining, with an arm about the neck of Jad-bal-ja.

“They are up to something,” said the old man. “We must watch carefully
against a surprise. If the blacks would but come now, while the doorway
is held by only fifty, we should overcome them easily, and have, I do
verily believe, some slight chance of escaping from the palace grounds.”

“Your long residence here,” said Tarzan, “has filled you with the same
senseless fear of the Bolgani that the Gomangani hold. From the attitude
of mind which you hold toward them one would think them some manner of
supermen—they are only beasts, my friend, and if we remain loyal to our
cause we shall overcome them.”

“Beasts they may be,” replied the old man, “but they are beasts with the
brains of men—their cunning and their cruelty are diabolical.”

A long silence ensued, broken only by the nervous whisperings of the
Gomangani, whose morale, it was evident, was slowly disintegrating under
the nervous strain of the enforced wait, and the failure of their
fellows of the forest to come quickly to their aid. To this was added
the demoralizing effect of speculation upon what the Bolgani were
planning or what plan they already were putting into effect. The very
silence of the gorilla-men was more terrible than the din of actual
assault. La was the first of the whites to break the silence.

“If thirty of the Gomangani could leave the palace so easily, why might
not we leave also?” she asked.

“There were two reasons,” replied Tarzan. “One was that should we have
left simultaneously the Bolgani, greatly outnumbering us as they did,
could have harassed us and detained us for a sufficient length of time
to have permitted their messengers to reach the villagers ahead of us,
with the result that in a short time we should have been surrounded by
thousands of hostile warriors. The second reason is that I desire to
punish the creatures, so that in future a stranger may be safe in the
Valley of the Palace of Diamonds.” He paused. “And now I shall give you
a third reason why we may not seek to escape at this moment.” He pointed
toward the windows overlooking the terrace. “Look,” he said, “the
terrace and the gardens are filled with Bolgani. Whatever their plan I
think its success depends upon our attempt to escape from this room
through the windows, for, unless I am mistaken, the Bolgani upon the
terrace and in the gardens are making an attempt to hide themselves from
us.”

The old man walked to a part of the room from which he could see the
greater part of the terrace and gardens upon which the windows of the
throne room looked.

“You are right,” he said when he returned to the ape-man’s side; “the
Bolgani are all massed outside these windows with the exception of those
who guard the entrance, and possibly some others at the doorways at
other portions of the throne room. That, however, we must determine.” He
walked quickly to the opposite side of the chamber and drew back the
hangings before one of the apertures, disclosing beyond a small band of
Bolgani. They stood there motionless, not making any effort to seize or
harm him. To another exit, and another, he went, and beyond each
discovered to the occupants of the chamber the same silent gorilla
guardians. He made the circle of the room, passing over the dais behind
the three thrones, and then he came back to Tarzan and La.

“It is as I suspected,” he said, “we are entirely surrounded. Unless
help comes soon we are lost.”

“But their force is divided,” Tarzan reminded him.

“Even so, it is sufficient to account for us,” replied the old man.

“Perhaps you are right,” said Tarzan, “but at least we shall have a
bully fight.”

“What is that!” exclaimed La, and simultaneously, attracted by the same
noise, the inmates of the throne room raised their eyes to the ceiling
above them, where they saw that traps had been lifted from a dozen
openings, revealing the scowling faces of several score of gorilla-men.

“What are they up to now!” exclaimed Tarzan, and as though in answer to
the query the Bolgani above began hurling bundles of burning, oil-soaked
rags, tied in goat skins, into the throne room, which immediately
commenced to fill it with a thick, suffocating smoke, accompanied by the
stench of burning hide and hair.




                               CHAPTER XV
                            THE MAP OF BLOOD


AFTER Esteban and Owaza had buried the gold they returned to the spot
where they had left their five boys, and proceeding with them to the
river made camp for the night. Here they discussed their plans, deciding
to abandon the balance of the party to reach the coast as best they
might, while they returned to another section of the coast where they
could recruit sufficient porters to carry out the gold.

“Instead of going way back to the coast for porters,” asked Esteban,
“why could we not just as well recruit them from the nearest village?”

“Such men would not go with us way to the coast,” replied Owaza. “They
are not porters. At best they would but carry our gold to the next
village.”

“Why not that, then?” inquired the Spaniard. “And at the next village we
could employ porters to carry us on still farther, until we could employ
other men to continue on with us.”

Owaza shook his head. “It is a good plan, Bwana, but we cannot do it,
because we have nothing with which to pay our porters.”

Esteban scratched his head. “You are right,” he said, “but it would save
us that damnable trip to the coast and return.” They sat for some
moments in silence, thinking. “I have it!” at last exclaimed the
Spaniard. “Even if we had the porters now we could not go directly to
the coast for fear of meeting Flora Hawkes’s party—we must let them get
out of Africa before we take the gold to the coast. Two months will be
none too long to wait, for they are going to have a devil of a time
getting to the coast at all with that bunch of mutinous porters. While
we are waiting, therefore, let us take one of the ingots of gold to the
nearest point at which we can dispose of it for trade goods. Then we can
return and hire porters to carry it from village to village.”

“The Bwana speaks words of wisdom,” replied Owaza. “It is not as far to
the nearest trading post as it is back to the coast, and thus we shall
not only save time, but also many long, hard marches.”

“In the morning, then, we shall return and unearth one of the ingots,
but we must be sure that none of your men accompanies us, for no one
must know until it is absolutely necessary where the gold is buried.
When we return for it, of course, then others must know, too, but
inasmuch as we shall be with it constantly thereafter there will be
little danger of its being taken from us.”

And so upon the following morning the Spaniard and Owaza returned to the
buried treasure, where they unearthed a single ingot.

Before he left the spot the Spaniard drew upon the inner surface of the
leopard skin that he wore across his shoulder an accurate map of the
location of the treasure, making the drawing with a sharpened stick,
dipped in the blood of a small rodent he had killed for the purpose.
From Owaza he obtained the native names of the river and of such
landmarks as were visible from the spot at which the treasure was
buried, together with as explicit directions as possible for reaching
the place from the coast. This information, too, he wrote below the map,
and when he had finished he felt much relieved from the fear that should
aught befall Owaza he might never be able to locate the gold.



When Jane Clayton reached the coast to take passage for London she found
awaiting her a wire stating that her father was entirely out of danger,
and that there was no necessity for her coming to him. She, therefore,
after a few days of rest, turned her face again toward home, and
commenced to retrace the steps of the long, hot, weary journey that she
had just completed. When, finally, she arrived at the bungalow she
learned, to her consternation, that Tarzan of the Apes had not yet
returned from his expedition to the city of Opar after the gold from the
treasure vaults. She found Korak, evidently much exercised, but
unwilling to voice a doubt as to the ability of his father to care for
himself. She learned of the escape of the golden lion with regret, for
she knew that Tarzan had become much attached to the noble beast.

It was the second day after her return that the Waziri who had
accompanied Tarzan returned without him. Then, indeed, was her heart
filled with fear for her lord and master. She questioned the men
carefully, and when she learned from them that Tarzan had suffered
another accident that had again affected his memory, she immediately
announced that she would set out on the following day in search of him,
commanding the Waziri who had just returned to accompany her.

Korak attempted to dissuade her, but failing in that insisted upon
accompanying her.

“We must not all be away at once,” she said. “You remain here, my son.
If I fail I shall return and let you go.”

“I cannot let you go alone, Mother,” replied Korak.

“I am not alone when the Waziri are with me,” she laughed. “And you know
perfectly well, boy, that I am as safe anywhere in the heart of Africa
with them as I am here at the ranch.”

“Yes, yes, I suppose so,” he replied, “but I wish I might go, or that
Meriem were here.”

“Yes, I, too, wish that Meriem were here,” replied Lady Greystoke.
“However, do not worry. You know that my jungle-craft, while not equal
to that of Tarzan or Korak, is by no means a poor asset, and that,
surrounded by the loyalty and bravery of the Waziri, I shall be safe.”

“I suppose you are right,” replied Korak, “but I do not like to see you
go without me.”

And so, notwithstanding his objections, Jane Clayton set out the next
morning with fifty Waziri warriors in search of her savage mate.



When Esteban and Owaza had not returned to camp as they had promised,
the other members of the party were at first inclined to anger, which
was later replaced by concern, not so much for the safety of the
Spaniard but for fear that Owaza might have met with an accident and
would not return to take them in safety to the coast, for of all the
blacks he alone seemed competent to handle the surly and mutinous
carriers. The negroes scouted the idea that Owaza had become lost and
were more inclined to the opinion that he and Esteban had deliberately
deserted them. Luvini, who acted as head-man in Owaza’s absence, had a
theory of his own.

“Owaza and the Bwana have gone after the ivory raiders alone. By
trickery they may accomplish as much as we could have accomplished by
force, and there will only be two among whom to divide the ivory.”

“But how may two men overcome a band of raiders?” inquired Flora,
skeptically.

“You do not know Owaza,” answered Luvini. “If he can gain the ears of
their slaves he will win them over, and when the Arabs see that he who
accompanies Owaza and who fights at the head of the mutinous slaves is
Tarzan of the Apes, they will flee in terror.”

“I believe he is right,” muttered Kraski, “it sounds just like the
Spaniard,” and then suddenly he turned upon Luvini. “Can you lead us to
the raiders’ camp?” he demanded.

“Yes,” replied the negro.

“Good,” exclaimed Kraski; “and now, Flora, what do you think of this
plan? Let us send a swift runner to the raiders, warning them against
Owaza and the Spaniard, and telling them that the latter is not Tarzan
of the Apes, but an impostor. We can ask them to capture and hold the
two until we come, and after we arrive we can make such further plans as
the circumstances permit. Very possibly we can carry out our original
design after we have once entered their camp as friends.”

“Yes, that sounds good,” replied Flora, “and it is certainly crooked
enough—just like you, yourself.”

The Russian blushed. “‘Birds of a feather’—” he quoted.

The girl shrugged her shoulders indifferently, but Bluber, who, with
Peebles and Throck, had been silent listeners to the conversation,
blustered.

“Vot do you mean birds vit fedders?” he demanded. “Who vas a crook? I
tell you, Mister Carl Kraski, I am an honest man, dot is von t’ing dot
no man don’t say about Adolph Bluber, he is a crook.”

“O shut up,” snapped Kraski, “if there’s anything in it you’ll be for
it—if there’s no risk. These fellows stole the ivory themselves, and
killed a lot of people, probably, to do it. In addition they have taken
slaves, which we will free.”

“O vell,” said Bluber, “if it is fair und eqvitable, vy, all right, but
just remember, Mister Kraski, dot _I_ am an honest man.”

“Blime!” exclaimed Throck, “we’re all honest; I’ve never seen such a
downy bunch of parsons in all me life.”

“Sure we’re honest,” roared John Peebles, “and anyone ’at says we ain’t
gets ’is bally ’ead knocked off, and ’ere we are, ’n that’s that.”

The girl smiled wearily. “You can always tell honest men,” she said.
“They go around telling the world how honest they are. But never mind
that; the thing now is to decide whether we want to follow Kraski’s
suggestion or not. It’s something we’ve got all pretty well to agree
upon before we undertake it. There are five of us. Let’s leave it to a
vote. Do we, or don’t we?”

“Will the men accompany us?” asked Kraski, turning to Luvini.

“If they are promised a share of the ivory they will,” replied the
black.

“How many are in favor of Carl’s plan?” asked Flora.

They were unanimously for it, and so it was decided that they would
undertake the venture, and a half hour later a runner was despatched on
the trail to the raiders’ camp with a message for the raider chief.
Shortly after, the party broke camp and took up its march in the same
direction.

A week later, when they reached the camp of the raiders they found that
their messenger had arrived safely and that they were expected. Esteban
and Owaza had not put in an appearance nor had anything been seen or
heard of them in the vicinity. The result was that the Arabs were
inclined to be suspicious and surly, fearing that the message: brought
to them had been but a ruse to permit this considerable body of whites
and armed blacks to enter their stockade in safety.

Jane Clayton and her Waziri moving rapidly, picked up the spoor of Flora
Hawkes’s safari at the camp where the Waziri had last seen Esteban, whom
they still thought to have been Tarzan of the Apes. Following the
plainly marked trail, and moving much more rapidly than the Hawkes
safari, Jane and the Waziri made camp within a mile of the ivory raiders
only about a week after the Hawkes party had arrived and where they
still remained, waiting either for the coming of Owaza and Esteban, or
for a propitious moment in which they could launch their traitorous
assault upon the Arabs. In the meantime, Luvini and some of the other
blacks had succeeded in secretly spreading the propaganda of revolt
among the slaves of the Arabs. Though he reported his progress daily to
Flora Hawkes, he did not report the steady growth and development of a
little private plan of his own, which contemplated, in addition to the
revolt of the slaves, and the slaying of the Arabs, the murder of all
the whites in the camp, with the exception of Flora Hawkes, whom Luvini
wished to preserve either for himself or for sale to some black sultan
of the north. It was Luvini’s shrewd plan to first slay the Arabs, with
the assistance of the whites, and then to fall upon the whites and slay
them, after their body servants had stolen their weapons from them.

That Luvini would have been able to carry out his plan with ease there
is little doubt, had it not been for the loyalty and affection of a
young black boy attached to Flora Hawkes for her personal service.

The young white woman, notwithstanding the length to which she would go
in the satisfaction of her greed and avarice, was a kind and indulgent
mistress. The kindnesses she had shown this ignorant little black boy
were presently to return her dividends far beyond her investment.

Luvini had been to her upon a certain afternoon to advise her that all
was ready, and that the revolt of the slaves and the murder of the Arabs
should take place that evening, immediately after dark. The cupidity of
the whites had long been aroused by the store of ivory possessed by the
raiders, with the result that all were more than eager for the final
step in the conspiracy that would put them in possession of considerable
wealth.

It was just before the evening meal that the little negro boy crept into
Flora Hawkes’s tent. He was very wide-eyed, and terribly frightened.

“What is the matter?” she demanded.

“S-sh!” he cautioned. “Do not let them hear you speak to me, but put
your ear close to me while I tell you in a low voice what Luvini is
planning.”

The girl bent her head close to the lips of the little black. “You have
been kind to me,” he whispered, “and now that Luvini would harm you I
have come to tell you.”

“What do you mean?” exclaimed Flora, in a low voice.

“I mean that Luvini, after the Arabs are killed, has given orders that
the black boys kill all the white men and take you prisoner. He intends
to either keep you for himself or to sell you in the north for a great
sum of money.”

“But how do you know all this?” demanded the girl.

“All the blacks in camp know it,” replied the boy. “I was to have stolen
your rifle and your pistol, as each of the boys will steal the weapons
of his white master.”

The girl sprang to her feet. “I’ll teach that nigger a lesson,” she
cried, seizing her pistol and striding toward the flap of the tent.

The boy seized her about the knees and held her. “No! no!” he cried. “Do
not do it. Do not say anything. It will only mean that they will kill
the white men sooner and take you prisoner just the same. Every black
boy in the camp is against you. Luvini has promised that the ivory shall
be divided equally among them all. They are ready now, and if you should
threaten Luvini, or if in any other way they should learn that you were
aware of the plot, they would fall upon you immediately.”

“What do you expect me to do then?” she asked.

“There is but one hope, and that is in flight. You and the white men
must escape into the jungle. Not even I may accompany you.”

The girl stood looking at the little boy in silence for a moment, and
then finally she said, “Very well, I will do as you say. You have saved
my life. Perhaps I may never be able to repay you, and perhaps, again, I
may. Go, now, before suspicion alights upon you.”

The black withdrew from the tent, crawling beneath the back wall to
avoid being seen by any of his fellows who were in the center of the
camp from which the front of the tent was in plain view. Immediately he
was gone Flora walked casually into the open and went to Kraski’s tent,
which the Russian occupied in common with Bluber. She found the two men
and in low whispers apprised them of what the black had told her. Kraski
then called Peebles and Throck, it being decided that they should give
no outward sign of holding any suspicion that aught was wrong. The
Englishmen were for jumping in upon the blacks and annihilating them,
but Flora Hawkes dissuaded them from any such rash act by pointing out
how greatly they were outnumbered by the natives, and how hopeless it
would be to attempt to overpower them.

Bluber, with his usual cunning and shrewdness which inclined always to
double dealing where there was the slightest possibility for it,
suggested that they secretly advise the Arabs of what they had learned,
and joining forces with them take up as strong a position in the camp as
possible and commence to fire into the blacks without waiting for their
attack.

Again Flora Hawkes vetoed the suggestion. “It will not do,” she said,
“for the Arabs are at heart as much our enemies as the blacks. If we
were successful in subduing the niggers it would be but a question of
minutes before the Arabs knew every detail of the plot that we had laid
against them, after which our lives would not be worth _that_,” and she
snapped her fingers.

“I guess Flora is right, as usual,” growled Peebles, “but what in ’ell
are we goin’ to do wanderin’ around in this ’ere jungle without no
niggers to hunt for us, or cook for us, or carry things for us, or find
our way for us, that’s wot I’d like to know, and ’ere we are, ’n that’s
that.”

“No, I guess there ain’t nothin’ else to do,” said Throck; “but blime if
I likes to run away, says I, leastwise not for no dirty niggers.”

There came then to the ears of the whites, rumbling from the far
distance in the jungle, the roar of a lion.

“_Oi! Oi!_” cried Bluber. “Ve go out all alone in dot jungle? _Mein
Gott!_ I just as soon stay here und get killed like a vite man.”

“They won’t kill you like a white man,” said Kraski. “They’ll torture
you if you stay.”

Bluber wrung his hands, and the sweat of fear rolled down his oily face.
“_Oi!_ vy did I done it? vy did I done it?” he wailed. “Vy didn’t I stay
home in London vere I belong?”

“Shut up!” snapped Flora. “Don’t you know that if you do anything to
arouse the suspicion of these fellows they will be on us at once? There
is only one thing for us to do and that is to wait until they
precipitate the attack upon the Arabs. We will still have our weapons,
for they do not plan to steal them from us until after the Arabs are
killed. In the confusion of the fight, we must make our escape into the
jungle, and after that—God knows—and God help us.”

“Yes,” blubbered Bluber, who was in a blue funk, “_Gott_ help us!”

A moment later Luvini came to them. “All is ready, Bwanas,” he said. “As
soon as the evening meal has been eaten, be in readiness. You will hear
a shot, that will be the signal. Then open fire upon the Arabs.”

“Good,” said Kraski; “we have just been talking about it and we have
decided that we will take our stand near the gate to prevent their
escape.”

“It is well,” said Luvini, “but you must remain here.” He was addressing
Flora. “It would not be safe for you to be where there is to be
fighting. Remain here in your tent, and we will confine the fighting to
the other side of the village and possibly to the gate, if any of them
makes a break for escape.”

“All right,” said Flora, “I will remain here where it is safe.”

Satisfied that things could not have worked into his hands to better
advantage the black left them, and presently the entire camp was
occupied with the evening meal. There was an atmosphere of restraint,
and high, nervous tension throughout the entire camp that must have been
noticeable, even to the Arabs, though they, alone of the entire company,
were ignorant as to its cause. Bluber was so terrified that he could not
eat, but sat white and trembling with his eyes roving wildly about the
camp—first to the blacks, then to the Arabs, and then to the gate, the
distance to which he must have measured a hundred times as he sat there
waiting for the shot that was to be the signal for the massacre that was
to send him out into the jungle to be, he surely thought, the immediate
prey of the first hunting lion that passed.

Peebles and Throck ate their meal stolidly, much to Bluber’s disgust.
Kraski, being of a highly nervous temperament, ate but little, but he
showed no signs of fear. Nor did Flora Hawkes, though at heart she
realized the hopelessness of their situation.

Darkness had fallen. Some of the blacks and Arabs were still eating,
when suddenly the silence was shattered by the sharp staccato report of
a rifle. An Arab sank silently to the earth. Kraski rose and grasped
Flora by the arm. “Come!” he cried.

Followed by Peebles and Throck, and preceded by Bluber, to whose feet
fright had lent wings, they hurried toward the gate of the palisade.

By now the air was filled with the hoarse cries of fighting men and the
report of rifles. The Arabs, who had numbered but about a dozen, were
putting up a game fight, and being far better marksmen than the blacks,
the issue of the battle was still in doubt when Kraski opened the gate
and the five whites fled into the darkness of the jungle.

The outcome of the fight within the camp could not have been other than
it was, for so greatly did the blacks outnumber the Arabs, that
eventually, notwithstanding their poor marksmanship, they succeeded in
shooting down the last of the nomads of the north. Then it was that
Luvini turned his attention to the other whites only to discover that
they had fled the village. The black realized two things instantly. One
was that someone had betrayed him, and the other, that the whites could
not have gone far in the short time since they had left the camp.

Calling his warriors about him he explained to them what had happened,
and impressing upon them that the whites, if permitted to escape, would
eventually return with reinforcements to punish the blacks, he aroused
his followers, who now numbered over two hundred warriors, to the
necessity of setting out immediately upon the trail of the fugitives and
overtaking them before they could carry word even to a neighboring
village, the nearest of which was not more than a day’s march distant.




                              CHAPTER XVI
                           THE DIAMOND HOARD


AS the primitive smoke bombs filled the throne room of the Tower of the
Emperors with their suffocating fumes, the Gomangani clustered about
Tarzan begging him to save them, for they, too, had seen the massed
Bolgani before every entrance and the great body of them that awaited in
the gardens and upon the terrace without.

“Wait a minute,” said Tarzan, “until the smoke is thick enough to hide
our movements from the Bolgani, and then we will rush the windows
overlooking the terrace, for they are nearer the east gate than any
other exit, and thus some of us will have a better chance for escape.”

“I have a better plan,” said the old man. “When the smoke conceals us,
follow me. There is one exit that is unguarded, probably because they do
not dream that we would use it. When I passed over the dais behind the
throne I took occasion to note that there were no Bolgani guarding it.”

“Where does it lead?” asked Tarzan.

“Into the basement of the Tower of Diamonds—the tower in which I
discovered you. That portion of the palace is nearest to the east gate,
and if we can reach it before they suspect our purpose there will be
little doubt that we can reach the forest at least.”

“Splendid!” ejaculated the ape-man. “It will not be long now before the
smoke hides us from the Bolgani.”

In fact it was so thick by this time that the occupants of the throne
room were finding difficulty in breathing. Many of them were coughing
and choking and the eyes of all were watering from the effects of the
acrid smoke. And yet they were not entirely hidden from the observation
of the watchers all about them.

“I don’t know how much more of this we can stand,” said Tarzan. “I have
about all I care for, now.”

“It _is_ thickening up a bit,” said the old man. “Just a moment more and
I think we can make it unseen.”

“I can stand it no longer,” cried La. “I am suffocating and I am
half-blinded.”

“Very well,” said the old man; “I doubt if they can see us now. It is
pretty thick. Come, follow me;” and he led the way up the steps of the
dais and through an aperture behind the thrones—a small opening hidden
by hangings. The old man went first, and then La, followed by Tarzan and
Jad-bal-ja, who had about reached the limit of his endurance and
patience, so that it had been with difficulty that Tarzan had restrained
him, and who now was voicing his anger in deep growls which might have
apprised the Bolgani of their avenue of escape. Behind Tarzan and the
lion crowded the coughing Gomangani; but because Jad-bal-ja was just in
front of them they did not crowd as closely upon the party ahead of them
as they probably would have done otherwise.

The aperture opened into a dark corridor which led down a flight of
rough steps to a lower level, and then straight through utter darkness
for the rather considerable distance which separated the Tower of
Diamonds from the Tower of the Emperors. So great was their relief at
escaping the dense smoke of the throne room that none of the party
minded the darkness of the corridor, but followed patiently the lead of
the old man who had explained that the first stairs down which they had
passed were the only obstacles to be encountered in the tunnel.

At the corridor’s end the old man halted before a heavy door, which
after considerable difficulty he managed to open.

“Wait a moment,” he said, “until I find a cresset and make a light.”

They heard him moving about beyond the doorway for a moment and then a
dim light flared, and presently the wick in a cresset flickered. In the
dim rays Tarzan saw before them a large rectangular chamber, the great
size of which was only partially suggested in the wavering light of the
cresset.

“Get them all in,” said the old man, “and close the door;” and when that
had been done he called to Tarzan. “Come!” he said. “Before we leave
this chamber I want to show you such a sight as no other human eyes have
ever rested upon.”

He led him to the far side of the chamber where, in the light of the
cresset, Tarzan saw tier after tier of shelves, upon which were stacked
small sacks made of skins. The old man set the cresset upon one of the
shelves and taking a sack opened it and spilled a portion of the
contents into the palm of his hand. “Diamonds,” he said. “Each of these
packages weighs five pounds and each contains diamonds. They have been
accumulating them for countless ages, for they mine far more than they
can use themselves. In their legends is the belief that some day the
Atlantians will return and they can sell the diamonds to them. And so
they continue to mine them and store them as though there was a constant
and ready market for them. Here, take one of the bags with you,” he
said. He handed one to Tarzan and another to La.

“I do not believe that we shall ever leave the valley alive, but we
might;” and he took a third bag for himself.

From the diamond vault the old man led them up a primitive ladder to the
floor above, and quickly to the main entrance of the Tower. Only two
heavy doors, bolted upon the inside, now lay between them and the
terrace, a short distance beyond which the east gate swung open. The old
man was about to open the doors when Tarzan stopped him.

“Wait a moment,” he said, “until the rest of the Gomangani come. It
takes them some time to ascend the ladder. When they are all here behind
us, swing the doors open, and you and La, with this ten or a dozen
Gomangani that are immediately around us, make a break for the gate. The
rest of us will bring up the rear and hold the Bolgani off in case they
attack us. Get ready,” he added a moment later, “I think they are all
up.”

Carefully Tarzan explained to the Gomangani the plan he had in mind, and
then, turning to the old man, he commanded “Now!” The bolt slipped, the
doors swung open, and simultaneously the entire party started at a run
toward the east gate.

The Bolgani, who were still massed about the throne room, were not aware
that their victims had eluded them until Tarzan, bringing up the rear
with Jad-bal-ja was passing through the east gate. Then the Bolgani
discovered him, and immediately set up a hue and cry that brought
several hundred of them on a mad run in pursuit.

“Here they come,” cried Tarzan to the others, “make a run of
it—straight down the valley toward Opar, La.”

“And you?” demanded the young woman.

“I shall remain a moment with the Gomangani, and attempt to punish these
fellows.”

La stopped in her tracks. “I shall not go a step without you, Tarzan of
the Apes,” she said. “Too great already are the risks you have taken for
me. No; I shall not go without you.”

The ape-man shrugged. “As you will,” he said. “Here they come.”

With great difficulty he rallied a portion of the Gomangani who, once
through the gate, seemed imbued but with a single purpose, and that to
put as much distance between the Palace of Diamonds and themselves as
possible. Perhaps fifty warriors rallied to his call, and with these he
stood in the gateway toward which several hundred Bolgani were now
charging.

The old man came and touched Tarzan on the arm. “You had better fly,” he
said. “The Gomangani will break and run at the first assault.”

“We will gain nothing by flying,” said Tarzan, “for we should only lose
what we have gained with the Gomangani, and then we should have the
whole valley about us like hornets.”

He had scarcely finished speaking when one of the Gomangani cried:
“Look! Look! They come;” and pointed along the trail into the forest.

“And just in time, too,” remarked Tarzan, as he saw the first of a swarm
of Gomangani pouring out of the forest toward the east gate. “Come!” he
cried to the advancing blacks, “the Bolgani are upon us. Come, and
avenge your wrongs!” Then he turned, and calling to the blacks around
him, leaped forward to meet the onrushing gorilla-men. Behind them wave
after wave of Gomangani rolled through the east gate of the Palace of
Diamonds, carrying everything before them to break at last like surf
upon the wavering wall of Bolgani that was being relentlessly hurled
back against the palace walls.

The shouting and the fighting and the blood worked Jad-bal-ja into such
a frenzy of excitement that Tarzan with difficulty restrained him from
springing upon friend and foe alike, with the result that it required so
much of the ape-man’s time to hold in leash his ferocious ally that he
was able to take but little part in the battle, yet he saw that it was
going his way, and that, but for the occurrence of some untoward event,
the complete defeat of the Bolgani was assured.

Nor were his deductions erroneous. So frantic were the Gomangani with
the blood-lust of revenge and so enthused by the first fruits of
victory, that they went fully as mad as Jad-bal-ja himself. They neither
gave nor asked quarter, and the fighting ended only when they could find
no more Bolgani to slay.

The fighting over, Tarzan, with La and the old man, returned to the
throne room, from which the fumes of the smoke bombs had now
disappeared. To them they summoned the head-man of each village, and
when they had assembled before the dais, above which stood the three
whites, with the great, black-maned lion Jad-bal-ja, Tarzan addressed
them.

“Gomangani of the Valley of the Palace of Diamonds,” he said, “you have
this night won your freedom from the tyrannical masters that have
oppressed you since far beyond the time the oldest of you may remember.
For so many countless ages have you been oppressed that there has never
developed among you a leader capable of ruling you wisely and justly.
Therefore you must select a ruler from another race than your own.”

“You! You!” cried voice after voice as the head-men clamored to make
Tarzan of the Apes their king.

“No,” cried the ape-man, holding up his hand for silence, “but there is
one here who has lived long among you, and who knows your habits and
your customs, your hopes and your needs better than any other. If he
will stay with you and rule you he will, I am sure, make you a good
king,” and Tarzan pointed to the old man.

The old man looked at Tarzan in bewilderment. “But I want to go away
from here,” he said; “I want to get back into the world of civilization,
from which I have been buried all these years.”

“You do not know what you are talking about,” replied the ape-man. “You
have been gone very long. You will find no friends left back there from
whence you came. You will find deceit, and hypocrisy, and greed, and
avarice, and cruelty. You will find that no one will be interested in
you and that you will be interested in no one there. I, Tarzan of the
Apes, have left my jungle and gone to the cities built by men, but
always I have been disgusted and been glad to return to my jungle—to
the noble beasts that are honest in their loves and in their hates—to
the freedom and genuineness of nature.

“If you return you will be disappointed, and you will realize that you
have thrown away an opportunity of accomplishing a work well worth your
while. These poor creatures need you. I cannot remain to guide them out
of darkness, but you may, and you may so mold them that they will be an
industrious, virtuous, and kindly people, not untrained, however, in the
arts of warfare, for when we have that which is good, there will always
be those who are envious and who, if they are more powerful than we,
will attempt to come and take what we have by force. Therefore, you must
train your people to protect their country and their rights, and to
protect them they must have the ability and the knowledge to fight
successfully, and the weapons wherewith to wage their wars.”

“You speak the truth, Tarzan of the Apes,” replied the old man. “There
is nothing for me in that other world, so, if the Gomangani wish me to
be their chief I will remain here.”

The head-men, when he questioned them, assured Tarzan that if they could
not have him for chief they would be very glad to have the old man, whom
they all knew, either by sight or reputation, as one who had never
perpetrated any cruelties upon the Gomangani.

The few surviving Bolgani who had taken refuge in various parts of the
palace were sought out and brought to the throne room. Here they were
given the option of remaining in the valley as slaves, or leaving the
country entirely. The Gomangani would have fallen upon them and slain
them, but that their new king would not permit.

“But where shall we go if we leave the Valley of the Palace of
Diamonds?” asked one of the Bolgani. “Beyond the city of Opar we know
not what exists, and in Opar may we find only enemies.”

Tarzan sat eyeing them quizzically, and in silence. For a long time he
did not speak, while several of the Gomangani head-men, and others of
the Bolgani, made suggestions for the future of the gorilla-men. Finally
the ape-man arose and nodded toward the Bolgani.

“There are about a hundred of you,” he said. “You are powerful creatures
and should be ferocious fighters. Beside me sits La, the High Priestess
and queen of Opar. A wicked priest, usurping her power, has driven her
from her throne, but tomorrow we march upon Opar with the bravest
Gomangani of the Valley of the Palace of Diamonds, and there we punish
Cadj, the High Priest, who has proven a traitor to his queen; and La,
once more, ascends the throne of Opar. But where the seeds of treason
have once been broadcast the plant may spring up at any time and where
least expected. It will be long, therefore, before La of Opar may have
full confidence in the loyalty of her people—a fact which offers you an
opportunity and a country. Accompany us, therefore, to Opar, and fight
with us to replace La upon her throne, and then, when the fighting is
over, remain there as La’s bodyguard to protect her, not only from
enemies without, but from enemies within.”

The Bolgani discussed the matter for several minutes, and then one of
them came to Tarzan. “We will do as you suggest,” he said.

“And you will be loyal to La?” asked the ape-man.

“A Bolgani is never a traitor,” replied the gorilla-man.

“Good!” exclaimed Tarzan, “and you, La, are you satisfied with this
arrangement?”

“I accept them in my service,” replied she.

Early the next morning Tarzan and La set out with three thousand
Gomangani and a hundred Bolgani to punish the traitorous Cadj. There was
little or no attempt at strategy or deception. They simply marched down
through the Valley of the Palace of Diamonds, descended the rocky ravine
into the valley of Opar, and made straight for the rear of the palace of
La.

A little gray monkey, sitting among the vines and creepers upon the top
of the temple walls, saw them coming. He cocked his head, first upon one
side and then upon the other, and became so interested and excited that
for a moment he forgot to scratch his belly—an occupation he had been
assiduously pursuing for some time. The closer the column approached the
more excited became Manu, the monkey, and when he realized vaguely the
great numbers of the Gomangani he was fairly beside himself, but the
last straw that sent him scampering madly back to the palace of Opar was
the sight of the Bolgani—the ogres of his little world.

Cadj was in the courtyard of the inner temple, where at sunrise he had
performed a sacrifice to the Flaming God. With Cadj were a number of the
lesser priests, and Oah and her priestesses. That there was dissension
among them was evident by the scowling faces fully as much as by the
words which Oah directed at Cadj.

“Once again have you gone too far, Cadj,” she cried bitterly. “Only may
the High Priestess of the Flaming God perform the act of sacrifice. Yet
again and again do you persist in defiling the sacred knife with your
unworthy hand.”

“Silence, woman,” growled the High Priest. “I am Cadj, King of Opar,
High Priest of the Flaming God. You are what you are only because of the
favor of Cadj. Try not my patience too far or you shall indeed know the
feel of the sacred knife.” There could be no mistaking the sinister
menace in his words. Several of those about him could ill conceal the
shocked surprise they felt at his sacrilegious attitude toward their
High Priestess. However little they thought of Oah, the fact remained
that she had been elevated to the highest place among them, and those
that believed that La was dead, as Cadj had taken great pains to lead
them all to believe, gave in full to Oah the reverence which her high
office entitled her to.

“Have a care, Cadj,” warned one of the older priests. “There is a limit
beyond which not even you may pass.”

“You dare threaten me?” cried Cadj, the maniacal fury of fanaticism
gleaming in his eyes. “You dare threaten _me_, Cadj, the High Priest of
the Flaming God?” And as he spoke he leaped toward the offending man,
the sacrificial knife raised menacingly above his head, and just at that
moment a little gray monkey came chattering and screaming through an
embrasure in the wall overlooking the court of the temple.

“The Bolgani! The Bolgani!” he shrieked. “They come! They come!”

Cadj stopped and wheeled toward Manu, the hand that held the knife
dropping at his side. “You saw them, Manu?” he asked. “You are speaking
the truth? If this is another of your tricks you will not live to play
another joke upon Cadj.”

“I speak the truth,” chattered the little monkey. “I saw them with my
own eyes.”

“How many of them are there?” asked Cadj. “And how near to Opar have
they come?”

“They are as many as the leaves upon the trees,” replied Manu, “and they
are already close to the temple wall—the Bolgani and the Gomangani,
they come as the grasses that grow in the ravines where it is cool and
damp.”

Cadj turned and raised his face toward the sun, and throwing back his
head gave voice to a long-drawn scream that ended in a piercing shriek.
Three times he voiced the hideous cry, and then with a command to the
others in the court to follow him he started at a brisk trot toward the
palace proper. As Cadj directed his steps toward the ancient avenue,
upon which the palace of Opar faced, there issued from every corridor
and doorway groups of the knurled and hairy men of Opar, armed with
their heavy bludgeons and their knives. Screaming and chattering in the
trees above them were a score or more of little gray monkeys.

“Not here,” they cried, “not here,” and pointed toward the south side of
the city.

Like an undisciplined mob the horde of priests and warriors reentered
the palace at Cadj’s heels, and retraced their steps toward the opposite
side of the edifice. Here they scrambled to the summit of the lofty wall
which guards the palace, just as Tarzan’s forces came to a halt outside.

“Rocks! Rocks!” screamed Cadj, and in answer to his commands the women
in the courtyard below commenced to gather the loose fragments of stone
that had crumbled from the wall and from the palace, and to toss them up
to the warriors above.

“Go away!” screamed Cadj to the army outside his gates. “Go away! I am
Cadj, High Priest of the Flaming God, and this is his temple. Defile not
the temple of the Flaming God or you shall know his wrath.”

Tarzan stepped forward a little ahead of the others, and raised his hand
for silence.

“La, your High Priestess and your queen, is here,” he cried to the
Oparians upon the wall. “Cadj is a traitor and an impostor. Open your
gates and receive your queen. Give up the traitors to justice, and no
harm will befall you; but refuse La entry to her city and we shall take
by force and with bloodshed that which belongs to La rightfully.”

As he ceased speaking La stepped to his side that all her people might
see her, and immediately there were scattering cries for La and a voice
or two raised against Cadj. Evidently realizing that it would not take
much to turn the scale against him, Cadj shrieked to his men to attack,
and simultaneously launched a stone at Tarzan. Only the wondrous agility
that he possessed saved the ape-man, and the missile passed by, and
striking a Gomangani over the heart, felled him. Instantly a shower of
missiles fell upon them, and then Tarzan called to his followers to
charge. Roaring and growling, the Bolgani and the Gomangani leaped
forward to the attack. Cat-like they ran up the rough wall in the face
of the menacing bludgeons above. Tarzan, who had chosen Cadj as his
objective, was among the first to reach the summit. A hairy, crooked
warrior struck at him with a bludgeon, and hanging to the summit of the
wall with one hand, Tarzan caught the weapon in the other and wrested it
from his assailant. At the same time he saw Cadj turn and disappear into
the courtyard beyond. Then Tarzan drew himself to the top where he was
immediately engaged by two other warriors of Opar. With the weapon he
had wrested from their fellow he knocked them to right and left, so
great an advantage his great height and strength gave him over them, and
then, remembering only that Cadj, who was the ringleader of the revolt
against La, must not be permitted to escape Tarzan leaped to the
pavement below just as the High Priest disappeared through an archway at
the opposite end of the courtyard.

Some priests and priestesses sought to impede his progress. Seizing one
of the former by the ankles he swung the body in circles about him,
clearing his own pathway as he ran for the opposite end of the
courtyard, and there he halted and wheeled and putting all the strength
of his great muscles into the effort, he swung the body of the priest
once more and hurled it back into the faces of his pursuers.

Without waiting to note the effect of his act he turned again and
continued in pursuit of Cadj. The fellow kept always just ahead of him,
because Cadj knew his way through the labyrinthian mazes of the palace
and temple and courtyards better than Tarzan. That the trail was leading
toward the inner courts of the temple Tarzan was convinced. There Cadj
would find easy ingress to the pits beneath the palace and a hiding
place from which it would be difficult to dislodge him, so numerous and
winding were the dark subterranean tunnels. And so Tarzan put forth
every effort to reach the sacrificial court in time to prevent Cadj from
gaining the comparative safety of the underground passages; but as he
finally leaped through the doorway into the court, a noose, cunningly
laid, closed about one of his ankles and he was hurled heavily to the
ground. Almost instantly a number of the crooked little men of Opar
leaped upon him, where he lay, half-stunned by the fall, and before he
had fully regained his faculties they had trussed him securely.

Only about half conscious, he felt them raise him from the ground and
carry him, and presently he was deposited upon a cold stone surface.
Then it was that full consciousness returned to him, and he realized
that he lay outstretched once more upon the sacrificial altar of the
inner court of the Temple of the Flaming God and above him stood Cadj,
the High Priest, his cruel face contorted in a grimace of hate and the
anticipation of revenge long deferred.

“At last!” gloated the creature of hate. “This time, Tarzan of the Apes,
you shall know the fury not of the Flaming God, but of Cadj, the man;
nor shall there be any wait nor any interference.”

He swung the sacrificial knife high above his head. Beyond the point of
the knife Tarzan of the Apes saw the summit of the courtyard wall, and
just surmounting it the head and shoulders of a mighty, black-maned
lion.

“Jad-bal-ja!” he cried. “Kill! Kill!”

Cadj hesitated, his knife poised on high. He saw the direction of the
ape-man’s eyes and followed them, and in that instant the golden lion
leaped to the pavement, and with two mighty bounds was upon the High
Priest of Opar. The knife clattered to the floor and the great jaws
closed upon the horrid face.

The lesser priests who had seized Tarzan, and who had remained to
witness his death at the hands of Cadj, had fled screaming from the
court the instant that the golden lion had leaped upon their master, and
now Tarzan and Jad-bal-ja and the corpse of Cadj were the sole occupants
of the sacrificial courtyard of the temple.

“Come, Jad-bal-ja,” commanded Tarzan; “let no one harm Tarzan of the
Apes.”

An hour later the victorious forces of La were overrunning the ancient
palace and temples of Opar. The priests and warriors who had not been
killed had quickly surrendered and acknowledged La as their queen and
High Priestess, and now at La’s command the city was being searched for
Tarzan and Cadj. It was thus that La, herself, leading a searching
party, entered the sacrificial courtyard.

The sight that met her eyes brought her to a sudden halt, for there,
bound upon the altar, lay Tarzan of the Apes, and standing above him,
his snarling face and gleaming eyes glaring directly at her was
Jad-bal-ja, the golden lion.

“Tarzan!” shrieked La, taking a step toward the altar. “Cadj has had his
way at last. God of my fathers have pity on me—Tarzan is dead.”

“No,” cried the ape-man; “far from dead. Come and release me. I am only
bound, but had it not been for Jad-bal-ja I had been dead beneath your
sacrificial knife.”

“Thank God,” cried La, and started to approach the altar, but paused
before the menacing attitude of the growling lion.

“Down!” cried Tarzan, “let her approach;” and Jad-bal-ja lay down beside
his master and stretched his whiskered chin across the ape-man’s breast.

La came then, and picking up the sacrificial knife, cut the bonds that
held the lord of the jungle captive, and then she saw beyond the altar
the corpse of Cadj.

“Your worst enemy is dead,” said Tarzan, “and for his death you may
thank Jad-bal-ja, as I thank him for my life. You should rule now in
peace and happiness and in friendship with the people of the Valley of
the Palace of Diamonds.”

That night Tarzan and the Bolgani and the head-men of the Gomangani, and
the priests and priestesses of Opar, sat in the great banquet hall of
the Palace of Opar, as the guests of La, the queen, and ate from the
golden platters of the ancient Atlantians—platters that had been
fashioned on a continent that exists today only in the legends of
antiquity. And the following morning Tarzan and Jad-bal-ja set forth
upon their return journey to the land of the Waziri and home.




                              CHAPTER XVII
                          THE TORTURE OF FIRE


FLORA HAWKES and her four confederates, pursued by Luvini and his two
hundred warriors, stumbled through the darkness of the jungle night.
They had no objective, for, guided entirely as they had been by the
blacks, they knew not where they were and were completely lost. The sole
idea dominating the mind of each was to put as much distance between
themselves and the camp of the ivory raiders as possible, for no matter
what the outcome of the battle there might have been, their fate would
be the same should the victorious party capture them. They had stumbled
on for perhaps half an hour when, during a momentary rest, they heard
plainly behind them the sound of pursuit, and again they plunged on in
their aimless flight of terror.

Presently, to their surprise, they discerned the glow of a light ahead.
What could it be? Had they made a complete circle, and was this again
the camp they had been fleeing? They pushed on to reconnoiter, until at
last they saw before them the outlines of a camp surrounded by a thorn
boma, in the center of which was burning a small camp-fire. About the
fire were congregated half-a-hundred black warriors, and as the
fugitives crept closer they saw among the blacks a figure standing out
clearly in the light of the camp-fire—a white woman—and behind them
rose louder and louder the sound of pursuit.

From the gestures and gesticulations of the blacks around the camp-fire
it was evident that they were discussing the sounds of the battle they
had recently heard in the direction of the raiders’ camp, for they often
pointed in that direction, and now the woman raised her hand for silence
and they all listened, and it was evident that they, too, heard the
coming of the warriors who were pursuing Flora Hawkes and her
confederates.

“There is a white woman there,” said Flora to the others. “We do not
know who she is, but she is our only hope, for those who are pursuing us
will overtake us quickly. Perhaps this woman will protect us. Come, I am
going to find out;” and without waiting for an answer she walked boldly
toward the boma.

They had come but a short distance when the keen eyes of the Waziri
discovered them, and instantly the boma wall was ringed with bristling
spears.

“Stop!” cried one of the warriors. “We are the Waziri of Tarzan. Who are
you?”

“I am an Englishwoman,” called Flora in reply. “I and my companions are
lost in the jungle. We have been betrayed by our safari—our head-man is
pursuing us now with warriors. There are but five of us and we ask your
protection.”

“Let them come,” said Jane to the Waziri.

As Flora Hawkes and the four men entered the boma beneath the scrutiny
of Jane Clayton and the Waziri, another pair of eyes watched from the
foliage of the great tree that overhung the camp upon the opposite
side—gray eyes to which a strange light came as they recognized the
girl and her companions.

As the newcomers approached Lady Greystoke the latter gave an
exclamation of surprise. “Flora!” she exclaimed, in astonishment. “Flora
Hawkes, what in the world are you doing here?”

The girl, startled too, came to a full stop. “Lady Greystoke!” she
ejaculated.

“I do not understand,” continued Lady Greystoke. “I did not know that
you were in Africa.”

For a moment the glib Flora was overcome by consternation, but presently
her native wit came to her assistance. “I am here with Mr. Bluber and
his friends,” she said, “who came to make scientific researches, and
brought me along because I had been to Africa with you and Lord
Greystoke, and knew something of the manners and customs of the country,
and now our boys have turned against us and unless you can help us we
are lost.”

“Are they west coast boys?” asked Jane.

“Yes,” replied Flora.

“I think my Waziri can handle them. How many of them are there?”

“About two hundred,” said Kraski.

Lady Greystoke shook her head. “The odds are pretty heavy,” she
commented, and then she called to Usula, who was in charge. “There are
two hundred west coast boys coming after these people,” she said; “we
shall have to fight to defend them.”

“We are Waziri,” replied Usula, simply, and a moment later the van of
Luvini’s forces broke into view at the outer rim of the camp-fire’s
reach.

At sight of the glistening warriors ready to receive them the west coast
boys halted. Luvini, taking in the inferior numbers of the enemy at a
glance, stepped forward a few paces ahead of his men and commenced to
shout taunts and insults, demanding the return of the whites to him. He
accompanied his words with fantastic and grotesque steps, at the same
time waving his rifle and shaking his fist. Presently his followers took
up the refrain until the whole band of two hundred was shrieking and
yelling and threatening, the while they leaped up and down as they
worked themselves into a frenzy of excitement that would impart to them
the courage necessary for the initiating of a charge.

The Waziri, behind the boma wall, schooled and disciplined by Tarzan of
the Apes, had long since discarded the fantastic overture to battle so
dear to the hearts of other warlike tribes and, instead, stood stolid
and grim awaiting the coming of the foe.

“They have a number of rifles,” commented Lady Greystoke; “that looks
rather bad for us.”

“There are not over half-a-dozen who can hit anything with their
rifles,” said Kraski.

“You men are all armed. Take your places among my Waziri. Warn your men
to go away and leave us alone. Do not fire until they attack, but at the
first overt act, commence firing, and keep it up—there is nothing that
so discourages a west coast black as the rifle fire of white men. Flora
and I will remain at the back of the camp, near that large tree.” She
spoke authoritatively, as one who is accustomed to command and knows
whereof she speaks. The men obeyed her; even Bluber, though he trembled
pitiably as he moved forward to take his place in the front ranks among
the Waziri.

Their movements, in the light of the camp-fire, were all plainly
discernible to Luvini, and also to that other who watched from the
foliage of the tree beneath which Jane Clayton and Flora Hawkes took
refuge. Luvini had not come to fight. He had come to capture Flora
Hawkes. He turned to his men. “There are only fifty of them,” he said.
“We can kill them easily, but we did not come to make war. We came to
get the white girl back again. Stay here and make a great show against
those sons of jackals. Keep them always looking at you. Advance a little
and then fall back again, and while you are thus keeping their attention
attracted in this direction I will take fifty men and go to the rear of
their camp and get the white girl, and when I have her I will send word
to you and immediately you can return to the village, where, behind the
palisade, we shall be safe against attack.”

Now this plan well suited the west coast blacks, who had no stomach for
the battle looming so imminent, and so they danced and yelled and
menaced more vociferously than before, for they felt they were doing it
all with perfect impunity, since presently they should retire, after a
bloodless victory, to the safety of their palisade.

As Luvini, making a detour, crept through the concealment of the dense
jungles to the rear of the camp while the din of the west coast blacks
arose to almost deafening proportions, there dropped suddenly to the
ground before the two white women from the tree above them, the figure
of a white giant, naked except for loin cloth and leopard skin—his
godlike contour picked out by the flickering light of the beast fire.

“John!” exclaimed Lady Greystoke. “Thank God it is you.”

“S-s-sh!” cautioned the white giant, placing a forefinger to his lips,
and then suddenly he wheeled upon Flora Hawkes. “It is you I want,” he
cried, and seizing the girl he threw her lightly across his shoulders,
and before Lady Greystoke could interfere—before she half-realized what
had occurred—he had lightly leaped the protecting boma in the rear of
the camp and disappeared into the jungle beyond.

For a moment Jane Clayton stood reeling as one stunned by an unexpected
blow, and then, with a stifled moan, she sank sobbing to the ground, her
face buried in her arms.

It was thus that Luvini and his warriors found her as they crept
stealthily over the boma and into the camp in the rear of the defenders
upon the opposite side of the beast fire. They had come for a white
woman and they had found one, and roughly dragging her to her feet,
smothering her cries with rough and filthy palms, they bore her out into
the jungle toward the palisaded village of the ivory raiders.

Ten minutes later the white men and the Waziri saw the west coast blacks
retire slowly into the jungle, still yelling and threatening, as though
bent on the total annihilation of their enemies—the battle was over
without a shot fired or a spear hurled.

“Blime,” said Throck, “what was all the bloomin’ fuss about anyhow?”

“Hi thought they was goin’ to heat hus hup, an’ the blighters never done
nothin’ but yell, an’ ’ere we are, ’n that’s that.”

The Jew swelled out his chest. “It takes more as a bunch of niggers to
bluff Adolph Bluber,” he said pompously.

Kraski looked after the departing blacks, and then, scratching his head,
turned back toward the camp-fire. “I can’t understand it,” he said, and
then, suddenly, “Where are Flora and Lady Greystoke?”

It was then that they discovered that the two women were missing.

The Waziri were frantic. They called the name of their mistress aloud,
but there was no reply. “Come!” cried Usula, “we, the Waziri, shall
fight, after all,” and running to the boma he leaped it, and, followed
by his fifty blacks, set out in pursuit of the west coast boys.

It was but a moment or two before they overtook them, and that which
ensued resembled more a rout than a battle. Fleeing in terror toward
their palisade with the Waziri at their heels the west coast blacks
threw away their rifles that they might run the faster, but Luvini and
his party had had sufficient start so that they were able to reach the
village and gain the safety of the palisade before pursued and pursuers
reached it. Once inside the gate the defenders made a stand for they
realized that if the Waziri entered they should all be massacred, and so
they fought as a cornered rat will fight, with the result that they
managed to hold off the attackers until they could close and bar the
gate. Built as it had been as a defense against far greater numbers the
village was easy to defend, for there were less than fifty Waziri now,
and nearly two hundred fighting men within the village to defend it
against them.

Realizing the futility of blind attack Usula withdrew his forces a short
distance from the palisade, and there they squatted, their fierce,
scowling faces glaring at the gateway while Usula pondered schemes for
outwitting the enemy, which he realized he could not overcome by force
alone.

“It is only Lady Greystoke that we want,” he said; “vengeance can wait
until another day.”

“But we do not even know that she is within the village,” reminded one
of his men.

“Where else could she be, then?” asked Usula. “It is true that you may
be right—she may not be within the village, but that I intend to find
out. I have a plan. See; the wind is from the opposite side of the
village. Ten of you will accompany me, the others will advance again
before the gate and make much noise, and pretend that you are about to
attack. After awhile the gate will open and they will come out. That I
promise you. I will try to be here before that happens, but if I am not,
divide into two parties and stand upon either side of the gateway and
let the west coast blacks escape; we do not care for them. Watch only
for Lady Greystoke, and when you see her take her away from those who
guard her. Do you understand?” His companions nodded. “Then come,” he
said, and selecting ten men disappeared into the jungle.

Luvini had carried Jane Clayton to a hut not far from the gateway to the
village. Here he had bound her securely and tied her to a stake, still
believing that she was Flora Hawkes, and then he had left her to hurry
back toward the gate that he might take command of his forces in defense
of the village.

So rapidly had the events of the past hour transpired that Jane Clayton
was still half dazed from the series of shocks that she had been called
upon to endure. Dwarfing to nothingness the menace of her present
position was the remembrance that her Tarzan had deserted her in her
hour of need, and carried off into the jungle another woman. Not even
the remembrance of what Usula had told her concerning the accident that
Tarzan had sustained, and which had supposedly again affected his
memory, could reconcile her to the brutality of his desertion, and now
she lay, face down, in the filth of the Arab hut, sobbing as she had not
for many years.

As she lay there torn by grief, Usula and his ten crept stealthily and
silently around the outside of the palisade to the rear of the village.
Here they found great quantities of dead brush left from the clearing
which the Arabs had made when constructing their village. This they
brought and piled along the palisade, close against it, until nearly
three-quarters of the palisade upon that side of the village was banked
high with it. Finding that it was difficult to prosecute their work in
silence, Usula despatched one of his men to the main body upon the
opposite side of the village, with instructions that they were to keep
up a continuous din of shouting to drown the sound of the operations of
their fellows. The plan worked to perfection, yet even though it
permitted Usula and his companions to labor with redoubled efforts, it
was more than an hour before the brush pile was disposed to his
satisfaction.

Luvini, from an aperture in the palisade, watched the main body of the
Waziri who were now revealed by the rising of the moon, and finally he
came to the conclusion that they did not intend to attack that night,
and therefore he might relax his watchfulness and utilize the time in
another and more agreeable manner. Instructing the bulk of his warriors
to remain near the gate and ever upon the alert, with orders that he be
summoned the moment that the Waziri showed any change in attitude,
Luvini repaired to the hut in which he had left Lady Greystoke.

The black was a huge fellow, with low, receding forehead and prognathous
jaw—a type of the lowest form of African negro. As he entered the hut
with a lighted torch which he stuck in the floor, his bloodshot eyes
gazed greedily at the still form of the woman lying prone before him. He
licked his thick lips and, coming closer, reached out and touched her.
Jane Clayton looked up, and recoiling in revulsion shrank away. At sight
of the woman’s face the black looked his surprise.

“Who are you?” he demanded in the pidgin English of the coast.

“I am Lady Greystoke, wife of Tarzan of the Apes,” replied Jane Clayton.
“If you are wise you will release me at once.”

Surprise and terror showed in the eyes of Luvini, and another emotion as
well, but which would dominate the muddy brain it was difficult, then,
to tell. For a long time he sat gazing at her, and slowly the greedy,
gloating expression upon his face dominated and expunged the fear that
had at first been written there, and in the change Jane Clayton read her
doom.

With fumbling fingers Luvini untied the knots of the bonds that held
Jane Clayton’s wrists and ankles. She felt his hot breath upon her and
saw his bloodshot eyes and the red tongue that momentarily licked the
thick lips. The instant that she felt the last thong with which she was
tied fall away she leaped to her feet and sprang for the entrance to the
hut, but a great hand reached forth and seized her, and as Luvini
dragged her back toward him, she wheeled like a mad tigress and struck
repeatedly at his grinning, ugly face. By brute force, ruthless and
indomitable, he beat down her weak resistance and slowly and surely
dragged her closer to him. Oblivious to aught else, deaf to the cries of
the Waziri before the gate and to the sudden new commotion that arose in
the village, the two struggled on, the woman, from the first, foredoomed
to defeat.

Against the rear palisade Usula had already put burning torches to his
brush pile at half-a-dozen different places. The flames, fanned by a
gentle jungle breeze, had leaped almost immediately into a roaring
conflagration, before which the dry wood of the palisade crumbled in a
shower of ruddy sparks which the wind carried to the thatched roofs of
the huts beyond, until in an incredibly short period of time the village
was a roaring inferno of flames. And even as Usula had predicted the
gate swung open and the west coast blacks swarmed forth in terror toward
the jungle. Upon either side of the gateway the Waziri stood, looking
for their mistress, but though they waited and watched in silence until
no more came from the gateway of the village, and until the interior of
the palisade was a seething hell of fire, they saw nothing of her.

Long after they were convinced that no human being could remain alive in
the village they still waited and hoped; but at last Usula gave up the
useless vigil.

“She was never there,” he said, “and now we must pursue the blacks and
capture some of them, from whom we may learn the whereabouts of Lady
Greystoke.”

It was daylight before they came upon a small band of stragglers, who
were in camp a few miles toward the west. These they quickly surrounded,
winning their immediate surrender by promises of immunity in the event
that they would answer truthfully the questions that Usula should
propound.

“Where is Luvini?” demanded Usula, who had learned the name of the
leader of the west coast boys from the Europeans the evening before.

“We do not know; we have not seen him since We left the village,”
replied one of the blacks. “We were some of the slaves of the Arabs, and
when we escaped the palisade last night we ran away from the others, for
we thought that we should be safer alone than with Luvini, who is even
crueller than the Arabs.”

“Did you see the white women that he brought to the camp last night?”
demanded Usula.

“He brought but one white woman,” replied the other.

“What did he do with her? Where is she now?” asked Usula.

“I do not know. When he brought her he bound her hand and foot and put
her in the hut which he occupied near the village gate. We have not seen
her since.”

Usula turned and looked at his companions. A great fear was in his eyes,
a fear that was reflected in the countenances of the others.

“Come!” he said, “we shall return to the village. And you will go with
us,” he added, addressing the west coast blacks, “and if you have lied
to us—” he made a significant movement with his forefinger across his
throat.

“We have not lied to you,” replied the others.

Quickly they retraced their steps toward the ruins of the Arab village,
nothing of which was left save a few piles of smoldering embers.

“Where was the hut in which the white woman was confined?” demanded
Usula, as they entered the smoking ruins.

“Here,” said one of the blacks, and walked quickly a few paces beyond
what had been the village gateway. Suddenly he halted and pointed at
something which lay upon the ground.

“There,” he said, “is the white woman you seek.”

Usula and the others pressed forward. Rage and grief contended for
mastery of them as they beheld, lying before them, the charred remnants
of a human body.

“It is she,” said Usula, turning away to hide his grief as the tears
rolled down his ebon cheeks. The other Waziri were equally affected, for
they all had loved the mate of the big Bwana.

“Perhaps it is not she,” suggested one of them; “perhaps it is another.”

“We can tell quickly,” cried a third. “If her rings are among the ashes
it is indeed she,” and he knelt and searched for the rings which Lady
Greystoke habitually wore.

Usula shook his head despairingly. “It is she,” he said, “there is the
very stake to which she was fastened”—he pointed to the blackened stub
of a stake close beside the body—“and as for the rings, even if they
are not there it will mean nothing, for Luvini would have taken them
away from her as soon as he captured her. There was time for everyone
else to leave the village except she, who was bound and could not
leave—no, it cannot be another.”

The Waziri scooped a shallow grave and reverently deposited the ashes
there, marking the spot with a little cairn of stones.




[Illustration: The Golden Lion with two mighty bounds was upon the High
Priest]




                             CHAPTER XVIII
                          THE SPOOR OF REVENGE


AS Tarzan of the Apes, adapting his speed to that of Jad-bal-ja, made
his comparatively slow way toward home, he reviewed with varying
emotions the experiences of the past week. While he had been
unsuccessful in raiding the treasure vaults of Opar, the sack of
diamonds which he carried compensated several-fold for this miscarriage
of his plans. His only concern now was for the safety of his Waziri,
and, perhaps, a troublesome desire to seek out the whites who had
drugged him and mete out to them the punishment they deserved. In view,
however, of his greater desire to return home he decided to make no
effort at apprehending them for the time being at least.

Hunting together, feeding together, and sleeping together, the man and
the great lion trod the savage jungle trails toward home. Yesterday they
shared the meat of Bara, the deer, today they feasted upon the carcass
of Horta, the boar, and between them there was little chance that either
would go hungry.

They had come within a day’s march of the bungalow when Tarzan
discovered the spoor of a considerable body of warriors. As some men
devour the latest stock-market quotations as though their very existence
depended upon an accurate knowledge of them, so Tarzan of the Apes
devoured every scrap of information that the jungle held for him, for,
in truth, an accurate knowledge of all that this information could
impart to him had been during his lifetime a _sine qua non_ to his
existence. So now he carefully examined the spoor that lay before him,
several days old though it was and partially obliterated by the passage
of beasts since it had been made, but yet legible enough to the keen
eyes and nostrils of the ape-man. His partial indifference suddenly gave
way to keen interest, for among the footprints of the great warriors he
saw now and again the smaller one of a white woman—a loved footprint
that he knew as well as you know your mother’s face.

“The Waziri returned and told her that I was missing,” he soliloquized,
“and now she has set out with them to search for me.” He turned to the
lion. “Well, Jad-bal-ja, once again we turn away from home—but no,
where she is is home.”

The direction that the trail led rather mystified Tarzan of the Apes, as
it was not along the direct route toward Opar, but in a rather more
southerly direction. On the sixth day his keen ears caught the sound of
approaching men, and presently there was wafted to his nostrils the
spoor of blacks. Sending Jad-bal-ja into a thicket to hide, Tarzan took
to the trees and moved rapidly in the direction of the approaching
negroes. As the distance between them lessened the scent became
stronger, until, even before he saw them, Tarzan knew that they were
Waziri, but the one effluvium that would have filled his soul with
happiness was lacking.

It was a surprised Usula who, at the head of the sad and dejected
Waziri, came at the turning of the trail suddenly face to face with his
master.

“Tarzan of the Apes!” cried Usula. “Is it indeed you?”

“It is none other,” replied the ape-man, “but where is Lady Greystoke?”

“Ah, master, how can we tell you!” cried Usula.

“You do not mean—” cried Tarzan. “It cannot be. Nothing could happen to
her while she was guarded by my Waziri!”

The warriors hung their heads in shame and sorrow. “We offer our lives
for hers,” said Usula, simply. He threw down his spear and shield and,
stretching his arms wide apart, bared his great breast to Tarzan.
“Strike, Bwana,” he said.

The ape-man turned away with bowed head. Presently he looked at Usula
again. “Tell me how it happened,” he said, “and forget your foolish
speech as I have forgotten the suggestion which prompted it.”

Briefly Usula narrated the events which had led up to the death of Jane,
and when he was done Tarzan of the Apes spoke but three words, voicing a
question which was typical of him.

“Where is Luvini?” he asked.

“Ah, that we do not know,” replied Usula.

“But I shall know,” said Tarzan of the Apes. “Go upon your way, my
children, back to your huts, and your women and your children, and when
next you see Tarzan of the Apes you will know that Luvini is dead.”

They begged permission to accompany him, but he would not listen to
them.

“You are needed at home at this time of year,” he said. “Already have
you been gone too long from the herds and fields. Return, then, and
carry word to Korak, but tell him that it is my wish that he, too,
remains at home—if I fail, then may he come and take up my unfinished
work if he wishes to do so.” As he ceased speaking he turned back in the
direction from which he had come, and whistled once a single, low,
long-drawn note, and a moment later Jad-bal-ja, the golden lion, bounded
into view along the jungle trail.

“The golden lion!” cried Usula. “When he escaped from Keewazi it was to
search for his beloved Bwana.”

Tarzan nodded. “He followed many marches to a strange country until he
found me,” he said, and then he bid the Waziri good-bye and bent his
steps once more away from home in search of Luvini and revenge.

John Peebles, wedged in the crotch of a large tree, greeted the coming
dawn with weary eyes. Near him was Dick Throck, similarly braced in
another crotch, while Kraski, more intelligent and therefore possessing
more inventive genius, had rigged a small platform of branches across
two parallel boughs, upon which he lay in comparative comfort. Ten feet
above him Bluber swung, half exhausted and wholly terrified, to a
smaller branch, supported in something that approximated safety by a
fork of the branch to which he clung.

“Gord,” groaned Peebles, “hi’ll let the bloody lions ’ave me before
hi’ll spend another such a night as this, an’ ’ere we are, ’n that’s
that!”

“And blime, too,” said Throck, “hi sleeps on the ground hafter this,
lions or no lions.”

“If the combined intelligence of the three of you was equal to that of a
walrus,” remarked Kraski, “we might have slept in comparative safety and
comfort last night on the ground.”

“Hey there, Bluber, _Mister_ Kraski is spikin’ to yer,” called Peebles
in fine sarcasm, accenting the Mister.

“_Oi! Oi!_ I don’t care vot nobody says,” moaned Bluber.

“’E wants us to build a ’ouse for ’im hevery night,” continued Peebles,
“while ’e stands abaht and tells us bloomin’ well ’ow to do it, and ’im,
bein’ a fine gentleman, don’t do no work.”

“Why should I do any work with my hands when you two big beasts haven’t
got anything else to work with?” asked Kraski. “You would all have
starved by this time if I hadn’t found food for you. And you’ll be lion
meat in the end, or die of exhaustion if you don’t listen to me—not
that it would be much loss.”

The others paid no attention to his last sally. As a matter of fact they
had all been quarreling so much for such a long time that they really
paid little attention to one another. With the exception of Peebles and
Throck they all hated one another cordially, and only clung together
because they were afraid to separate. Slowly Peebles lowered his bulk to
the ground. Throck followed him, and then came Kraski, and then,
finally, Bluber, who stood for a moment in silence, looking down at his
disreputable clothing.

“_Mein Gott!_” he exclaimed at last. “Look at me! Dis suit, vot it cost
me tventy guineas, look at it. Ruined. Ruined. It vouldn’t bring vun
penny in der pound.”

“The hell with your clothes!” exclaimed Kraski. “Here we are, lost, half
starved, constantly menaced by wild animals, and maybe, for all we know,
by cannibals, with Flora missing in the jungle, and you can stand there
and talk about your ’tventy guinea’ suit. You make me tired, Bluber. But
come on, we might as well be moving.”

“Which way?” asked Throck.

“Why, to the west, of course,” replied Kraski. “The coast is there, and
there is nothing else for us to do but try to reach it.”

“We can’t reach it by goin’ east,” roared Peebles, “an’ ’ere we are, ’n
that’s that.”

“Who said we could?” demanded Kraski.

“Well, we was travelin’ east all day yesterday,” said Peebles. “I knew
all the time that there was somethin’ wrong, and I just got it figured
out.”

Throck looked at his partner in stupid surprise. “What do you mean?” he
growled. “What makes you think we was travelin’ east?”

“It’s easy enough,” replied Peebles, “and I can prove it to you. Because
this party here knows so much more than the rest of us we’ve been
travelin’ straight toward the interior ever since the niggers deserted
us.” He nodded toward the Russian, who stood with his hands on his hips,
eyeing the other quizzically.

“If you think I’m taking you in the wrong direction, Peebles,” said
Kraski, “you just turn around and go the other way; but I’m going to
keep on the way we’ve been going, which is the right way.”

“It ain’t the right way,” retorted Peebles, “and I’ll show yer. Listen
here. When you travel west the sun is at your left side, isn’t it—that
is, all durin’ the middle of the day. Well, ever since we’ve been
travelin’ without the niggers the sun has been on our right. I thought
all the time there was somethin’ wrong, but I could never figure it out
until just now. It’s plain as the face on your nose. We’ve been
travelin’ due east right along.”

“Blime,” cried Throck, “that we have, due east, and this blighter thinks
as ’ow ’e knows it all.”

“_Oi!_” groaned Bluber, “und ve got to valk it all back again yet, once
more?”

Kraski laughed and turned away to resume the march in the direction he
had chosen. “You fellows go on your own way if you want to,” he said,
“and while you’re traveling, just ponder the fact that you’re south of
the equator and that therefore the sun is always in the north, which,
however, doesn’t change its old-fashioned habit of setting in the west.”

Bluber was the first to grasp the truth of Kraski’s statement. “Come on,
boys,” he said, “Carl vas right,” and he turned and followed the
Russian.

Peebles stood scratching his head, entirely baffled by the puzzling
problem, which Throck, also, was pondering deeply. Presently the latter
turned after Bluber and Kraski. “Come on, John,” he said to Peebles, “hi
don’t hunderstand it, but hi guess they’re right. They are headin’ right
toward where the sun set last night, and that sure must be west.”

His theory tottering, Peebles followed Throck, though he remained
unconvinced.

The four men, hungry and footsore, had dragged their weary way along the
jungle trail toward the west for several hours in vain search for game.
Unschooled in jungle craft they blundered on. There might have been on
every hand fierce carnivore or savage warriors, but so dull are the
perceptive faculties of civilized man, the most blatant foe might have
stalked them unperceived.

And so it was that shortly after noon, as they were crossing a small
clearing, the zip of an arrow that barely missed Bluber’s head, brought
them to a sudden, terrified halt. With a shrill scream of terror the Jew
crumpled to the ground. Kraski threw his rifle to his shoulder and
fired.

“There!” he cried, “behind those bushes,” and then another arrow, from
another direction, pierced his forearm. Peebles and Throck, beefy and
cumbersome, got into action with less celerity than the Russian, but,
like him, they showed no indication of fear.

“Down,” cried Kraski, suiting the action to the word. “Lie down and let
them have it.”

Scarcely had the three men dropped among the long grass when a score of
pigmy hunters came into the open, and a volley of arrows whizzed above
the prone men, while from a nearby tree two steel-gray eyes looked down
upon the ambush.

Bluber lay upon his belly with his face buried in his arms, his useless
rifle lying at his side, but Kraski, Peebles, and Throck, fighting for
their lives, pumped lead into the band of yelling pigmies.

Kraski and Peebles each dropped a native with his rifle and then the foe
withdrew into the concealing safety of the surrounding jungle. For a
moment there was a cessation of hostilities. Utter silence reigned, and
then a voice broke the quiet from the verdure of a nearby forest giant.

“Do not fire until I tell you to,” it said, in English, “and I will save
you.”

Bluber raised his head. “Come qvick! Come qvick!” he cried, “ve vill not
shoot. Safe me, safe me, und I giff you five pounds.”

From the tree from which the voice had issued there came a single, low,
long-drawn, whistled note, and then silence for a time.

The pigmies, momentarily surprised by the mysterious voice emanating
from the foliage of a tree, ceased their activities, but presently,
hearing nothing to arouse their fear, they emerged from the cover of the
bushes and launched another volley of arrows toward the four men lying
among the grasses in the clearing. Simultaneously the figure of a giant
white leaped from the lower branches of a patriarch of the jungle, as a
great black-maned lion sprang from the thicket below.

“_Oi!_” shrieked Bluber, and again buried his face in his arms.

For an instant the pigmies stood terrified, and then their leader cried:
“It is Tarzan!” and turned and fled into the jungle.

“Yes, it is Tarzan—Tarzan of the Apes,” cried Lord Greystoke. “It is
Tarzan and the golden lion,” but he spoke in the dialect of the pigmies,
and the whites understood no word of what he said. Then he turned to
them. “The Gomangani have gone,” he said; “get up.”

The four men crawled to their feet. “Who are you, and what are you doing
here?” demanded Tarzan of the Apes. “But I do not need to ask who you
are. You are the men who drugged me, and left me helpless in your camp,
a prey to the first passing lion or savage native.”

Bluber stumbled forward, rubbing his palms together and cringing and
smiling. “_Oi! Oi!_ Mr. Tarzan, ve did not know you. Neffer vould ve did
vat ve done, had ve known it vas Tarzan of the Apes. Safe me! Ten
pounds—tventy pounds—anyt’ing. Name your own price. Safe me, und it is
yours.”

Tarzan ignored the Jew and turned toward the others. “I am looking for
one of your men,” he said; “a black named Luvini. He killed my wife.
Where is he?”

“We know nothing of that,” said Kraski. “Luvini betrayed us and deserted
us. Your wife and another white woman were in our camp at the time. None
of us knows what became of them. They were behind us when we took our
post to defend the camp from our men and the slaves of the Arabs. Your
Waziri were there. After the enemy had withdrawn we found that the two
women had disappeared. We do not know what became of them. We are
looking for them now.”

“My Waziri told me as much,” said Tarzan, “but have you seen aught of
Luvini since?”

“No, we have not,” replied Kraski.

“What are you doing here?” demanded Tarzan.

“We came with Mr. Bluber on a scientific expedition,” replied the
Russian. “We have had a great deal of trouble. Our head-men, askari, and
porters have mutinied and deserted. We are absolutely alone and
helpless.”

“_Oi! Oi!_” cried Bluber. “Safe us! Safe us! But keep dot lion avay. He
makes me nerfous.”

“He will not hurt you—unless I tell him to,” said Tarzan.

“Den please don’t tell him to,” cried Bluber.

“Where do you want to go?” asked Tarzan.

“We are trying to get back to the coast,” replied Kraski, “and from
there to London.”

“Come with me,” said Tarzan, “possibly I can help you. You do not
deserve it, but I cannot see white men perish here in the jungle.”

They followed him toward the west, and that night they made camp beside
a small jungle stream.

It was difficult for the four Londoners to accustom themselves to the
presence of the great lion, and Bluber was in a state of palpable
terror.

As they squatted around the fire after the evening meal, which Tarzan
had provided, Kraski suggested that they set to and build some sort of a
shelter against the wild beasts.

“It will not be necessary,” said Tarzan. “Jad-bal-ja will guard you. He
will sleep here beside Tarzan of the Apes, and what one of us does not
hear the other will.”

Bluber sighed. “_Mein Gott!_” he cried. “I should giff ten pounds for
vun night’s sleep.”

“You may have it tonight for less than that,” replied Tarzan, “for
nothing shall befall you while Jad-bal-ja and I are here.”

“Vell, den I t’ink I say good night,” said the Jew, and moving a few
paces away from the fire he curled up and was soon asleep. Throck and
Peebles followed suit, and shortly after Kraski, too.

As the Russian lay, half dozing, his eyes partially open, he saw the
ape-man rise from the squatting position he had maintained before the
fire, and turn toward a nearby tree. As he did so something fell from
beneath his loin cloth—a little sack made of hides—a little sack,
bulging with its contents.

Kraski, thoroughly awakened now, watched it as the ape-man moved off a
short distance, accompanied by Jad-bal-ja, and lay down to sleep.

The great lion curled beside the prostrate man, and presently the
Russian was assured that both slept. Immediately he commenced crawling,
stealthily and slowly toward the little package lying beside the fire.
With each forward move that he made he paused and looked at the
recumbent figures of the two ferocious beasts before him, but both slept
on peacefully. At last the Russian could reach out and grasp the sack,
and drawing it toward him he stuffed it quickly inside his shirt. Then
he turned and crawled slowly and carefully back to his place beyond the
fire. There, lying with his head upon one arm as though in profound
slumber, he felt carefully of the sack with the fingers of his left
hand.

“They feel like pebbles,” he muttered to himself, “and doubtless that is
what they are, for the barbaric ornamentation of this savage barbarian
who is a peer of England. It does not seem possible that this wild beast
has sat in the House of Lords.”

Noiselessly Kraski undid the knot which held the mouth of the sack
closed, and a moment later he let a portion of the contents trickle
forth into his open palm.

“My God!” he cried, “diamonds!”

Greedily he poured them all out and gloated over them—great
scintillating stones of the first water—five pounds of pure, white
diamonds, representing so fabulous a fortune that the very contemplation
of it staggered the Russian.

“My God!” he repeated, “the wealth of Crœsus in my own hand.”

Quickly he gathered up the stones and replaced them in the sack, always
with one eye upon Tarzan and Jad-bal-ja; but neither stirred, and
presently he had returned them all to the pouch and slipped the package
inside his shirt.

“Tomorrow,” he muttered, “tomorrow—would to God that I had the nerve to
attempt it tonight.”

In the middle of the following morning Tarzan, with the four Londoners,
approached a good sized, stockaded village, containing many huts. He was
received not only graciously, but with the deference due an emperor.

The whites were awed by the attitude of the black chief and his warriors
as Tarzan was conducted into their presence.

After the usual ceremony had been gone through, Tarzan turned and waved
his hand toward the four Europeans. “These are my friends,” he said to
the black chief, “and they wish to reach the coast in safety. Send with
them, then, sufficient warriors to feed and guard them during the
journey. It is I, Tarzan of the Apes, who requests this favor.”

“Tarzan of the Apes, the great chief, Lord of the Jungle, has but to
command,” replied the black.

“Good!” exclaimed Tarzan, “feed them well and treat them well. I have
other business to attend to and may not remain.”

“Their bellies shall be filled, and they shall reach the coast
unscathed,” replied the chief.

Without a word of farewell, without even a sign that he realized their
existence, Tarzan of the Apes passed from the sight of the four
Europeans, while at his heels paced Jad-bal-ja, the golden lion.




[Illustration: Hunting together, the man and the great lion trod the
paths toward home]




                              CHAPTER XIX
                          A BARBED SHAFT KILLS


KRASKI spent a sleepless night. He could not help but realize that
sooner or later Tarzan would discover the loss of his pouch of diamonds,
and that he would return and demand an accounting of the four Londoners
he had befriended. And so it was that as the first streak of dawn
lighted the eastern horizon, the Russian arose from his pallet of dried
grasses within the hut that had been assigned him and Bluber by the
chief, and crept stealthily out into the village street.

“God!” he muttered to himself. “There is only one chance in a thousand
that I can reach the coast alone, but this,” and he pressed his hand
over the bag of diamonds that lay within his shirt—“but this, this is
worth every effort, even to the sacrifice of life—the fortune of a
thousand kings—my God, what could I not do with it in London, and
Paris, and New York!”

Stealthily he slunk from the village, and presently the verdure of the
jungle beyond closed about Carl Kraski, the Russian, as he disappeared
forever from the lives of his companions.

Bluber was the first to discover the absence of Kraski, for, although
there was no love between the two, they had been thrown together owing
to the friendship of Peebles and Throck.

“Have you seen Carl this morning?” he asked Peebles as the three men
gathered around the pot containing the unsavory stew that had been
brought to them for their breakfast.

“No,” said Peebles. “He must be asleep yet.”

“He is not in the hut,” replied Bluber. “He vas not dere ven I woke up.”

“He can take care of himself,” growled Throck, resuming his breakfast.
“You’ll likely find him with some of the ladies,” and he grinned in
appreciation of his little joke on Kraski’s well-known weakness.

They had finished their breakfast and were attempting to communicate
with some of the warriors, in an effort to learn when the chief proposed
that they should set forth for the coast, and still Kraski had not made
an appearance. By this time Bluber was considerably concerned, not at
all for Kraski’s safety, but for his own, since, if something could
happen to Kraski in this friendly village in the still watches of the
night, a similar fate might overtake him, and when he made this
suggestion to the others it gave them food for thought, too, so that
there were three rather apprehensive men who sought an audience with the
chief.

By means of signs and pidgin English, and distorted native dialect, a
word or two of which each of the three understood, they managed to
convey to the chief the information that Kraski had disappeared, and
that they wanted to know what had become of him.

The chief was, of course, as much puzzled as they, and immediately
instituted a thorough search of the village, with the result that it was
soon found that Kraski was not within the palisade, and shortly
afterward footprints were discovered leading through the village gateway
into the jungle.

“_Mein Gott!_” exclaimed Bluber, “he vent out dere, und he vent alone,
in der middle of der night. He must have been crazy.”

“Gord!” cried Throck, “what did he want to do that for?”

“You ain’t missed nothin’, have you?” asked Peebles of the other two.
“’E might ’ave stolen somethin’.”

“_Oi! Oi!_ Vot have ve got to steal?” cried Bluber. “Our guns, our
ammunition—dey are here beside us. He did not take them. Beside dose ve
have nothing of value except my tventy guinea suit.”

“But what did ’e do it for?” demanded Peebles.

“’E must ’ave been walkin’ in ’is bloomin’ sleep,” said Throck. And that
was as near to an explanation of Kraski’s mysterious disappearance as
the three could reach. An hour later they set out toward the coast under
the protection of a company of the chief’s warriors.

Kraski, his rifle slung over his shoulder, moved doggedly along the
jungle trail, a heavy automatic pistol grasped in his right hand. His
ears were constantly strained for the first intimation of pursuit as
well as for whatever other dangers might lurk before or upon either
side. Alone in the mysterious jungle he was experiencing a nightmare of
terror, and with each mile that he traveled the value of the diamonds
became less and less by comparison with the frightful ordeal that he
realized he must pass through before he could hope to reach the coast.

Once Histah, the snake, swinging from a lowhung branch across the trail,
barred his way, and the man dared not fire at him for fear of attracting
the attention of possible pursuers to his position. He was forced,
therefore, to make a detour through the tangled mass of underbrush which
grew closely upon either side of the narrow trail. When he reached it
again, beyond the snake, his clothing was more torn and tattered than
before, and his flesh was scratched and cut and bleeding from the
innumerable thorns past which he had been compelled to force his way. He
was soaked with perspiration and panting from exhaustion, and his
clothing was filled with ants whose vicious attacks upon his flesh
rendered him half mad with pain.

Once again in the clear he tore his clothing from him and sought
frantically to rid himself of the torturing pests.

So thick were the myriad ants upon his clothing that he dared not
attempt to reclaim it. Only the sack of diamonds, his ammunition and his
weapons did he snatch from the ravening horde whose numbers were rapidly
increasing, apparently by millions, as they sought to again lay hold
upon him and devour him.

Shaking the bulk of the ants from the articles he had retrieved, Kraski
dashed madly along the trail as naked as the day he was born, and when,
a half hour later, stumbling and at last falling exhausted, he lay
panting upon the damp jungle earth, he realized the utter futility of
his mad attempt to reach the coast alone, even more fully than he ever
could have under any other circumstances, since there is nothing that so
paralyzes the courage and self-confidence of a civilized man as to be
deprived of his clothing.

However scant the protection that might have been afforded by the torn
and tattered garments he had discarded, he could not have felt more
helpless had he lost his weapons and ammunition instead, for, to such an
extent are we the creatures of habit and environment. It was, therefore,
a terrified Kraski, already foredoomed to failure, who crawled fearfully
along the jungle trail.

That night, hungry and cold, he slept in the crotch of a great tree
while the hunting carnivore roared, and coughed, and growled through the
blackness of the jungle about him. Shivering with terror he started
momentarily to fearful wakefulness, and when, from exhaustion, he would
doze again it was not to rest but to dream of horrors that a sudden roar
would merge into reality. Thus the long hours of a frightful night
dragged out their tedious length, until it seemed that dawn would never
come. But come it did, and once again he took up his stumbling way
toward the west.

Reduced by fear and fatigue and pain to a state bordering upon half
consciousness, he blundered on, with each passing hour becoming
perceptibly weaker, for he had been without food or water since he had
deserted his companions more than thirty hours before.

Noon was approaching. Kraski was moving but slowly now with frequent
rests, and it was during one of these that there came to his numbed
sensibilities an insistent suggestion of the voices of human beings not
far distant. Quickly he shook himself and attempted to concentrate his
waning faculties. He listened intently, and presently with a renewal of
strength he arose to his feet.

There was no doubt about it. He heard voices but a short distance away
and they sounded not like the tones of natives, but rather those of
Europeans. Yet he was still careful, and so he crawled cautiously
forward, until at a turning of the trail he saw before him a clearing
dotted with trees which bordered the banks of a muddy stream. Near the
edge of the river was a small hut thatched with grasses and surrounded
by a rude palisade and further protected by an outer boma of thorn
bushes.

It was from the direction of the hut that the voices were coming, and
now he clearly discerned a woman’s voice raised in protest and in anger,
and replying to it the deep voice of a man.

Slowly the eyes of Carl Kraski went wide in incredulity, not unmixed
with terror, for the tones of the voice of the man he heard were the
tones of the dead Esteban Miranda, and the voice of the woman was that
of the missing Flora Hawkes, whom he had long since given up as dead
also. But Carl Kraski was no great believer in the supernatural.
Disembodied spirits need no huts or palisades, or bomas of thorns. The
owners of those voices were as live—as material—as he.

He started forward toward the hut, his hatred of Esteban and his
jealousy almost forgotten in the relief he felt in the realization that
he was to again have the companionship of creatures of his own kind. He
had moved, however, but a few steps from the edge of the jungle when the
woman’s voice came again to his ear, and with it the sudden realization
of his nakedness. He paused in thought, looking about him, and presently
he was busily engaged gathering the long, broad-leaved jungle grasses,
from which he fabricated a rude but serviceable skirt, which he fastened
about his waist with a twisted rope of the same material. Then with a
feeling of renewed confidence he moved forward toward the hut. Fearing
that they might not recognize him at first, and, taking him for an
enemy, attack him, Kraski, before he reached the entrance to the
palisade, called Esteban by name. Immediately the Spaniard came from the
hut, followed by the girl. Had Kraski not heard his voice and recognized
him by it, he would have thought him Tarzan of the Apes, so close was
the remarkable resemblance.

For a moment the two stood looking at the strange apparition before
them.

“Don’t you know me?” asked Kraski. “I am Carl—Carl Kraski. You know me,
Flora.”

“Carl!” exclaimed the girl, and started to leap forward, but Esteban
grasped her by the wrist and held her back.

“What are you doing here, Kraski?” asked the Spaniard in a surly tone.

“I am trying to make my way to the coast,” replied the Russian. “I am
nearly dead from starvation and exposure.”

“The way to the coast is there,” said the Spaniard, and pointed down the
trail toward the west. “Keep moving, Kraski, it is not healthy for you
here.”

“You mean to say that you will send me on without food or water?”
demanded the Russian.

“There is water,” said Esteban, pointing at the river, “and the jungle
is full of food for one with sufficient courage and intelligence to
gather it.”

“You cannot send him away,” cried the girl. “I did not think it possible
that even you could be so cruel,” and then, turning to the Russian, “O
Carl,” she cried, “do not go. Save me! Save me from this beast!”

“Then stand aside,” cried Kraski, and as the girl wrenched herself free
from the grasp of Miranda the Russian leveled his automatic and fired
point-blank at the Spaniard. The bullet missed its target; the empty
shell jammed in the breach and as Kraski pulled the trigger again with
no result he glanced at his weapon and, discovering its uselessness,
hurled it from him with an oath. As he strove frantically to bring his
rifle into action Esteban threw back his spear hand with the short,
heavy spear that he had learned by now so well to use, and before the
other could press the trigger of his rifle the barbed shaft tore through
his chest and heart. Without a sound Carl Kraski sank dead at the foot
of his enemy and his rival, while the woman both had loved, each in his
own selfish or brutal way, sank sobbing to the ground in the last and
deepest depths of despair.

Seeing that the other was dead, Esteban stepped forward and wrenched his
spear from Kraski’s body and also relieved his dead enemy of his
ammunition and weapons. As he did so his eyes fell upon a little bag
made of skins which Kraski had fastened to his waist by the grass rope
he had recently fashioned to uphold his primitive skirt.

The Spaniard felt of the bag and tried to figure out the nature of its
contents, coming to the conclusion that it was ammunition, but he did
not examine it closely until he had carried the dead man’s weapons into
his hut, where he had also taken the girl, who crouched in a corner,
sobbing.

“Poor Carl! Poor Carl!” she moaned, and then to the man facing her: “You
beast!”

“Yes,” he cried, with a laugh, “I am a beast. I am Tarzan of the Apes,
and that dirty Russian dared to call me Esteban. I am Tarzan! I am
Tarzan of the Apes!” he repeated in a loud scream. “Who dares call me
otherwise dies. I will show them. I will show them,” he mumbled.

The girl looked at him with wide and flaming eyes and shuddered.

“Mad,” she muttered. “Mad! My God—alone in the jungle with a maniac!”
And, in truth, in one respect was Esteban Miranda mad—mad with the
madness of the artist who lives the part he plays. And for so long, now,
had Esteban Miranda played the part, and so really proficient had he
become in his interpretation of the noble character, that he believed
himself Tarzan, and in outward appearance he might have deceived the
ape-man’s best friend. But within that godlike form was the heart of a
cur and the soul of a craven.

“He would have stolen Tarzan’s mate,” muttered Esteban. “Tarzan, Lord of
the Jungle! Did you see how I slew him, with a single shaft? You could
love a weakling, could you, when you could have the love of the great
Tarzan!”

“I loathe you,” said the girl. “You are indeed a beast. You are lower
than the beasts.”

“You are mine, though,” said the Spaniard, “and you shall never be
another’s—first I would kill you—but let us see what the Russian had
in his little bag of hides, it feels like ammunition enough to kill a
regiment,” and he untied the thongs that held the mouth of the bag
closed and let some of the contents spill out upon the floor of the hut.
As the sparkling stones rolled scintillant before their astonished eyes,
the girl gasped in incredulity.

“Holy Mary!” exclaimed the Spaniard, “they are diamonds.”

“Hundreds of them,” murmured the girl. “Where could he have gotten
them?”

“I do not know and I do not care,” said Esteban. “They are mine. They
are all mine—I am rich, Flora. I am rich, and if you are a good girl
you shall share my wealth with me.”

Flora Hawkes’s eyes narrowed. Awakened within her breast was the
always-present greed that dominated her being, and beside it, and
equally as powerful now to dominate her, her hatred for the Spaniard.
Could he have known it, possession of those gleaming baubles had
crystallized at last in the mind of the woman a determination she had
long fostered to slay the Spaniard while he slept. Heretofore she had
been afraid of being left alone in the jungle, but now the desire to
possess this great wealth overcame her terror.

Tarzan, ranging the jungle, picked up the trail of the various bands of
west coast boys and the fleeing slaves of the dead Arabs, and
overhauling each in turn he prosecuted his search for Luvini, awing the
blacks into truthfulness and leaving them in a state of terror when he
departed. Each and every one, they told him the same story. There was
none who had seen Luvini since the night of the battle and the fire, and
each was positive that he must have escaped with some other band.

So thoroughly occupied had the ape-man’s mind been during the past few
days with his sorrow and his search that lesser considerations had gone
neglected, with the result that he had not noted that the bag containing
the diamonds was missing. In fact, he had practically forgotten the
diamonds when, by the merest vagary of chance his mind happened to
revert to them, and then it was that he suddenly realized that they were
missing, but when he had lost them, or the circumstances surrounding the
loss, he could not recall.

“Those rascally Europeans,” he muttered to Jad-bal-ja, “they must have
taken them,” and suddenly with the thought the scarlet scar flamed
brilliantly upon his forehead, as just anger welled within him against
the perfidy and ingratitude of the men he had succored. “Come,” he said
to Jad-bal-ja, “as we search for Luvini we shall search for these others
also.” And so it was that Peebles and Throck and Bluber had traveled but
a short distance toward the coast when, during a noon-day halt, they
were surprised to see the figure of the ape-man moving majestically
toward them while, at his side, paced the great, black-maned lion.

Tarzan made no acknowledgment of their exuberant greeting, but came
forward in silence to stand at last with folded arms before them. There
was a grim, accusing expression upon his countenance that brought the
chill of fear to Bluber’s cowardly heart, and blanched the faces of the
two hardened English pugs.

“What is it?” they chorused. “What is wrong? What has happened?”

“I have come for the bag of stones you took from me,” said Tarzan
simply.

Each of the three eyed his companion suspiciously.

“I do not understand vot you mean, Mr. Tarzan,” purred Bluber, rubbing
his palms together. “I am sure dere is some mistake, unless—” he cast a
furtive and suspicious glance in the direction of Peebles and Throck.

“I don’t know nothin’ about no bag of stones,” said Peebles, “but I will
say as ’ow you can’t trust no Jew.”

“I don’t trust any of you,” said Tarzan. “I will give you five seconds
to hand over the bag of stones, and if you don’t produce it in that time
I shall have you thoroughly searched.”

“Sure,” cried Bluber, “search me, search me, by all means. Vy, Mr.
Tarzan, I vouldn’t take notting from you for notting.”

“There’s something wrong here,” growled Throck. “I ain’t got nothin’ of
yours and I’m sure these two haven’t neither.”

“Where is the other?” asked Tarzan.

“Oh, Kraski? He disappeared the same night you brought us to that
village. We hain’t seen him since—that’s it; I got it now—we wondered
why he left, and now I see it as plain as the face on me nose. It was
him that stole that bag of stones. That’s what he done. We’ve been
tryin’ to figure out ever since he left what he stole, and now I see it
plain enough.”

“Sure,” exclaimed Peebles. “That’s it, and ’ere we are, ’n that’s that.”

“Ve might have knowed it, ve might have knowed it,” agreed Bluber.

“But nevertheless I’m going to have you all searched,” said Tarzan, and
when the head-man came and Tarzan had explained what he desired, the
three whites were quickly stripped and searched. Even their few
belongings were thoroughly gone through, but no bag of stones was
revealed.

Without a word Tarzan turned back toward the jungle, and in another
moment the blacks and the three Europeans saw the leafy sea of foliage
swallow the ape-man and the golden lion.

“Gord help Kraski!” exclaimed Peebles.

“Wot do yer suppose he wants with a bag o’ stones?” inquired Throck. “’E
must be a bit balmy, I’ll say.”

“Balmy nudding,” exclaimed Bluber. “Dere is but vun kind of stones in
Africa vot Kraski would steal and run off into der jungle alone
mit—diamonds.”

Peebles and Throck opened their eyes in surprise. “The damned Russian!”
exclaimed the former. “He double-crossed us, that’s what ’e did.”

“He likely as not saved our lives, says hi,” said Throck. “If this ape
feller had found Kraski and the diamonds with us we’d of all suffered
alike—you couldn’t ’a’ made ’im believe we didn’t ’ave a ’and in it.
And Kraski wouldn’t ’a’ done nothin’ to help us out.”

“I ’opes ’e catches the beggar!” exclaimed Peebles, fervently.

They were startled into silence a moment later by the sight of Tarzan
returning to the camp, but he paid no attention to the whites, going
instead directly to the head-man, with whom he conferred for several
minutes. Then, once more, he turned and left.

Acting on information gained from the head-man, Tarzan struck off
through the jungle in the general direction of the village where he had
left the four whites in charge of the chief, and from which Kraski had
later escaped alone. He moved rapidly, leaving Jad-bal-ja to follow
behind, covering the distance to the village in a comparatively short
time, since he moved almost in an air line through the trees, where
there was no matted undergrowth to impede his progress.

Outside the village gate he took up Kraski’s spoor, now almost
obliterated, it is true, but still legible to the keen perceptive
faculties of the ape-man. This he followed swiftly, since Kraski had
clung tenaciously to the open trail that wound in a general westward
direction.

The sun had dropped almost to the western tree-tops, when Tarzan came
suddenly upon a clearing beside a sluggish stream, near the banks of
which stood a small, rude hut, surrounded by a palisade and a thorn
boma.

The ape-man paused and listened, sniffing the air with his sensitive
nostrils, and then on noiseless feet he crossed the clearing toward the
hut. In the grass outside the palisade lay the dead body of a white man,
and a single glance told the ape-man that it was the fugitive whom he
sought. Instantly he realized the futility of searching the corpse for
the bag of diamonds, since it was a foregone conclusion that they were
now in the possession of whoever had slain the Russian. A perfunctory
examination revealed the fact that he was right in so far as the absence
of the diamonds was concerned.

Both inside the hut and outside the palisade were indications of the
recent presence of a man and woman, the spoor of the former tallying
with that of the creature who had killed Gobu, the great ape, and hunted
Bara, the deer, upon the preserves of the ape-man. But the woman—who
was she? It was evident that she had been walking upon sore, tired feet,
and that in lieu of shoes she wore bandages of cloth.

Tarzan followed the spoor of the man and the woman where it led from the
hut into the jungle. As it progressed it became apparent that the woman
had been lagging behind, and that she had commenced to limp more and
more painfully. Her progress was very slow, and Tarzan could see that
the man had not waited for her, but that he had been, in some places, a
considerable distance ahead of her.

And so it was that Esteban had forged far ahead of Flora Hawkes, whose
bruised and bleeding feet would scarce support her.

“Wait for me, Esteban,” she had pleaded. “Do not desert me. Do not leave
me alone here in this terrible jungle.”

“Then keep up with me,” growled the Spaniard. “Do you think that with
this fortune in my possession I am going to wait here forever in the
middle of the jungle for someone to come and take it away from me? No, I
am going on to the coast as fast as I can. If you can keep up, well and
good. If you cannot, that is your own lookout.”

“But you could not desert me. Even you, Esteban, could not be such a
beast after all that you have forced me to do for you.”

The Spaniard laughed. “You are nothing more to me,” he said, “than an
old glove. With this,” and he held the sack of diamonds before him, “I
can purchase the finest gloves in the capitals of the world—new
gloves,” and he laughed grimly at his little joke.

“Esteban, Esteban,” she cried, “come back, come back. I can go no
farther. Do not leave me. Please come back and save me.” But he only
laughed at her, and as a turn of the trail shut him from her sight, she
sank helpless and exhausted to the ground.




                               CHAPTER XX
                            THE DEAD RETURN


THAT night Esteban made his lonely camp beside a jungle trail that wound
through the dry wash of an old river bed, along which a tiny rivulet
still trickled, affording the Spaniard the water which he craved.

The obsession which possessed him that he was in truth Tarzan of the
Apes, imparted to him a false courage, so that he could camp alone upon
the ground without recourse to artificial protection of any kind, and
fortune had favored him in this respect in that it had sent no prowling
beasts of prey to find him upon those occasions that he had dared too
much. During the period that Flora Hawkes had been with him he had built
shelters for her, but now that he had deserted her and was again alone,
he could not, in the rôle that he had assumed, consider so effeminate an
act as the building of even a thorn boma for protection during the
darkness of the night.

He did, however, build a fire, for he had made a kill and had not yet
reached a point of primitive savagery which permitted him even to
imagine that he enjoyed raw meat.

Having devoured what meat he wanted and filled himself at the little
rivulet, Esteban came back and squatted before his fire, where he drew
the pouch of diamonds from his loin cloth and, opening it, spilled a
handful of the precious gems into his palm. The flickering firelight
playing upon them sent scintillant gleams shooting into the dark of the
surrounding jungle night as the Spaniard let a tiny stream of the
sparkling stones trickle from one hand to the other, and in the pretty
play of light the Spaniard saw visions of the future—power, luxury,
beautiful women—all that great wealth might purchase for a man. With
half closed eyes he dreamed of the ideal that he should search the world
over to obtain—the dream-woman for whom he had always searched—the
dream-woman he had never found, the fit companion for such as Esteban
Miranda imagined himself to be. Presently through the dark lashes that
veiled his narrowed lids the Spaniard seemed to see before him in the
flickering light of his campfire a vague materialization of the figure
of his dream—a woman’s figure, clothed in flowing diaphanous white
which appeared to hover just above him at the outer rim of his firelight
at the summit of the ancient river bank.

It was strange how the vision persisted. Esteban closed his eyes
tightly, and then opened them ever so little, and there, as it had been
before he closed them, the vision remained. And then he opened his eyes
wide, and still the figure of the woman in white floated above him.

Esteban Miranda went suddenly pale. “Mother of God!” he cried. “It is
Flora. She is dead and has come back to haunt me.”

With staring eyes he slowly rose to his feet to confront the apparition,
when in soft and gentle tones it spoke.

“Heart of my heart,” it cried, “it is really you!”

Instantly Esteban realized that this was no disembodied spirit, nor was
it Flora—but who was it? Who was this vision of beauty, alone in the
savage African wilderness?

Very slowly now it was descending the embankment and coming toward him.
Esteban returned the diamonds to the pouch and replaced it inside his
loin cloth.

With outstretched arms the girl came toward him. “My love, my love,” she
cried, “do not tell me that you do not know me.” She was close enough
now for the Spaniard to see her rapidly rising and falling breasts and
her lips trembling with love and passion. A sudden wave of hot desire
swept over him, so with outstretched arms he sprang forward to meet her
and crush her to his breast.

Tarzan, following the spoor of the man and the woman, moved in a
leisurely manner along the jungle trail, for he realized that no haste
was essential to overtake these two. Nor was he at all surprised when he
came suddenly upon the huddled figure of a woman, lying in the center of
the pathway. He knelt beside her and laid a hand upon her shoulder,
eliciting a startled scream.

“God!” she cried, “this is the end!”

“You are in no danger,” said the ape-man. “I will not harm you.”

She turned her eyes and looked up at him. At first she thought he was
Esteban. “You have come back to save me, Esteban?” she asked.

“Esteban!” he exclaimed. “I am not Esteban. That is not my name.” And
then she recognized him.

“Lord Greystoke!” she cried. “It is really you?”

“Yes,” he said, “and who are you?”

“I am Flora Hawkes. I was Lady Greystoke’s maid.”

“I remember you,” he said. “What are you doing here?”

“I am afraid to tell you,” she said. “I am afraid of your anger.”

“Tell me,” he commanded. “You should know, Flora, that I do not harm
women.”

“We came to get gold from the vaults of Opar,” she said. “But that you
know.”

“I know nothing of it,” he replied. “Do you mean that you were with
those Europeans who drugged me and left me in their camp?”

“Yes,” she said, “we got the gold, but you came with your Waziri and
took it from us.”

“I came with no Waziri and took nothing from you,” said Tarzan. “I do
not understand you.”

She raised her eyebrows in surprise, for she knew that Tarzan of the
Apes did not lie.

“We became separated,” she said, “after our men turned against us.
Esteban stole me from the others, and then, after a while Kraski found
us. He was the Russian. He came with a bagful of diamonds and then
Esteban killed him and took the diamonds.”

It was now Tarzan’s turn to experience surprise.

“And Esteban is the man who is with you?” he asked.

“Yes,” she said, “but he has deserted me. I could not walk farther on my
sore feet. He has gone and left me here to die and he has taken the
diamonds with him.”

“We shall find him,” said the ape-man. “Come.”

“But I cannot walk,” said the girl.

“That is a small matter,” he said, and stooping lifted her to his
shoulder.

Easily the ape-man bore the exhausted girl along the trail. “It is not
far to water,” he said, “and water is what you need. It will help to
revive you and give you strength, and perhaps I shall be able to find
food for you soon.”

“Why are you so good to me?” asked the girl.

“You are a woman. I could not leave you alone in the jungle to die, no
matter what you may have done,” replied the ape-man. And Flora Hawkes
could only sob a broken plea for forgiveness for the wrong she had done
him.

It grew quite dark, but still they moved along the silent trail until
presently Tarzan caught in the distance the reflection of firelight.

“I think we shall soon find your friend,” he whispered. “Make no noise.”

A moment later his keen ears caught the sound of voices. He halted and
lowered the girl to her feet.

“If you cannot follow,” he said, “wait here. I do not wish him to
escape. I will return for you. If you can follow on slowly, do so.” And
then he left her and made his way cautiously forward toward the light
and the voices. He heard Flora Hawkes moving directly behind him. It was
evident that she could not bear the thought of being left alone again in
the dark jungle. Almost simultaneously Tarzan heard a low whine a few
paces to his right. “Jad-bal-ja,” he whispered in a low voice, “heel,”
and the great black-maned lion crept close to him, and Flora Hawkes,
stifling a scream, rushed to his side and grasped his arms.

“Silence,” he whispered; “Jad-bal-ja will not harm you.”

An instant later the three came to the edge of the ancient river bank,
and through the tall grasses growing there looked down upon the little
camp beneath.

Tarzan, to his consternation, saw a counterpart of himself standing
before a little fire, while slowly approaching the man, with
outstretched arms, was a woman, draped in flowing white. He heard her
words; soft words of love and endearment, and at the sound of the voice
and the scent spoor that a vagrant wind carried suddenly to his
nostrils, a strange complex of emotion overwhelmed him—happiness,
despair, rage, love, and hate.

He saw the man at the fire step forward with open arms to take the woman
to his breast, and then Tarzan separated the grasses and stepped to the
very edge of the embankment, his voice shattering the jungle with a
single word.

“Jane!” he cried, and instantly the man and woman turned and looked up
at him, where his figure was dimly revealed in the light of the
campfire. At sight of him the man wheeled and raced for the jungle on
the opposite side of the river, and then Tarzan leaped to the bottom of
the wash below and ran toward the woman.

“Jane,” he cried, “it is you, it is you!”

The woman showed her bewilderment. She looked first at the retreating
figure of the man she had been about to embrace and then turned her eyes
toward Tarzan. She drew her fingers across her brow and looked back
toward Esteban, but Esteban was no longer in sight. Then she took a
faltering step toward the ape-man.

“My God,” she cried, “what does it mean? Who are you, and if you are
Tarzan who was he?”

“I am Tarzan, Jane,” said the ape-man.

She looked back and saw Flora Hawkes approaching. “Yes,” she said, “you
are Tarzan. I saw you when you ran off into the jungle with Flora
Hawkes. I cannot understand, John. I could not believe that you, even
had you suffered an accident to your head, could have done such a
thing.”

“I, run off into the jungle with Flora Hawkes?” he asked, in unfeigned
surprise.

“I saw you,” said Jane.

The ape-man turned toward Flora. “I do not understand it,” he said.

“It was Esteban who ran off into the jungle with me, Lady Greystoke,”
said the girl. “It was Esteban who was about to deceive you again. This
is indeed Lord Greystoke. The other was an impostor, who only just
deserted me and left me to die in the jungle. Had not Lord Greystoke
come when he did I should be dead by now.”

Lady Greystoke took a faltering step toward her husband. “Ah, John,” she
said, “I knew it could not have been you. My heart told me, but my eyes
deceived me. Quick,” she cried, “that impostor must be captured. Hurry,
John, before he escapes.”

“Let him go,” said the ape-man. “As much as I want him, as much as I
want that which he has stolen from me, I will not leave you alone again
in the jungle, Jane, even to catch him.”

“But Jad-bal-ja,” she cried. “What of him?”

“Ah,” cried the ape-man, “I had forgotten,” and turning to the lion he
pointed toward the direction that the Spaniard had escaped. “Fetch him,
Jad-bal-ja,” he cried; and, with a bound, the tawny beast was off upon
the spoor of his quarry.

“He will kill him?” asked Flora Hawkes, shuddering. And yet at heart she
was glad of the just fate that was overtaking the Spaniard.

“No, he will not kill him,” said Tarzan of the Apes. “He may maul him a
bit, but he will bring him back alive if it is possible.” And then, as
though the fate of the fugitive was already forgotten, he turned toward
his mate.

“Jane,” he said, “Usula told me that you were dead. He said that they
found your burned body in the Arab village and that they buried it
there. How is it, then, that you are here alive and unharmed? I have
been searching the jungles for Luvini to avenge your death. Perhaps it
is well that I did not find him.”

“You would never have found him,” replied Jane Clayton, “but I cannot
understand why Usula should have told you that he had found my body and
buried it.”

“Some prisoners that he took,” replied Tarzan, “told him that Luvini had
taken you bound hand and foot into one of the Arab huts near the village
gateway, and that there he had further secured you to a stake driven
into the floor of the hut. After the village had been destroyed by fire
Usula and the other Waziri returned to search for you with some of the
prisoners they had taken who pointed out the location of the hut, where
the charred remains of a human body were found beside a burned stake to
which it had apparently been tied.”

“Ah!” exclaimed the girl, “I see. Luvini did bind me hand and foot and
tie me to the stake, but later he came back into the hut and removed the
bonds. He attempted to attack me—how long we fought I do not know, but
so engrossed were we in our struggle that neither one of us was aware of
the burning of the village about us. As I persistently fought him off I
caught a glimpse of a knife in his belt, and then I let him seize me and
as his arms encircled me I grasped the knife and, drawing it from its
sheath, plunged it into his back, below his left shoulder—that was the
end. Luvini sank lifeless to the floor of the hut. Almost simultaneously
the rear and roof of the structure burst into flames.

“I was almost naked, for he had torn nearly all my clothing from me in
our struggles. Hanging upon the wall of the hut was this white burnoose,
the property, doubtless, of one of the murdered Arabs. I seized it, and
throwing it about me ran into the village street. The huts were now all
aflame, and the last of the natives was disappearing through the
gateway. To my right was a section of palisade that had not yet been
attacked by the flames. To escape into the jungle by the gateway would
have meant running into the arms of my enemies, and so, somehow, I
managed to scale the palisade and drop into the jungle unseen by any.

“I have had considerable difficulty eluding the various bands of blacks
who escaped the village. A part of the time I have been hunting for the
Waziri and the balance I have had to remain in hiding. I was resting in
the crotch of a tree, about half a mile from here, when I saw the light
of this man’s fire, and when I came to investigate I was almost stunned
by joy to discover that I had, as I imagined, stumbled upon my Tarzan.”

“It was Luvini’s body, then, and not yours that they buried,” said
Tarzan.

“Yes,” said Jane, “and it was this man who just escaped whom I saw run
off into the jungle with Flora, and not you, as I believed.”

Flora Hawkes looked up suddenly. “And it must have been Esteban who came
with the Waziri and stole the gold from us. He fooled our men and he
must have fooled the Waziri, too.”

“He might have fooled anyone if he could deceive me,” said Jane Clayton.
“I should have discovered the deception in a few minutes I have no
doubt, but in the flickering light of the campfire, and influenced as I
was by the great joy of seeing Lord Greystoke again, I believed quickly
that which I wanted to believe.”

The ape-man ran his fingers through his thick shock of hair in a
characteristic gesture of meditation. “I cannot understand how he fooled
Usula in broad daylight,” he said with a shake of his head.

“I can,” said Jane. “He told him that he had suffered an injury to his
head which had caused him to lose his memory partially—an explanation
which accounted for many lapses in the man’s interpretation of your
personality.”

“He was a clever devil,” commented the ape-man.

“He was a devil, all right,” said Flora.

It was more than an hour later that the grasses at the river bank
suddenly parted and Jad-bal-ja emerged silently into their presence.
Grasped in his jaws was a torn and bloody leopard skin which he brought
and laid at the feet of his master.

The ape-man picked the thing up and examined it, and then he scowled. “I
believe Jad-bal-ja killed him after all,” he said.

“He probably resisted,” said Jane Clayton, “in which event Jad-bal-ja
could do nothing else in self-defense but slay him.”

“Do you suppose he ate him?” cried Flora Hawkes, drawing fearfully away
from the beast.

“No,” said Tarzan, “he has not had time. In the morning we will follow
the spoor and find his body. I should like to have the diamonds again.”
And then he told Jane the strange story connected with his acquisition
of the great wealth represented by the little bag of stones.

The following morning they set out in search of Esteban’s corpse. The
trail led through dense brush and thorns to the edge of the river
farther down stream, and there it disappeared, and though the ape-man
searched both sides of the river for a couple of miles above and below
the point at which he had lost the spoor, he found no further sign of
the Spaniard. There was blood along the tracks that Esteban had made and
blood upon the grasses at the river’s brim.

At last the ape-man returned to the two women. “That is the end of the
man who would be Tarzan,” he said.

“Do you think he is dead?” asked Jane.

“Yes, I am sure of it,” said the ape-man. “From the blood I imagine that
Jad-bal-ja mauled him, but that he managed to break away and get into
the river. The fact that I can find no indication of his having reached
the bank within a reasonable distance of this spot leads me to believe
that he has been devoured by crocodiles.”

Again Flora Hawkes shuddered. “He was a wicked man,” she said, “but I
would not wish even the wickedest such a fate as that.”

The ape-man shrugged. “He brought it upon himself, and, doubtless, the
world is better off without him.”

“It was my fault,” said Flora. “It was my wickedness that brought him
and the others here. I told them of what I had heard of the gold in the
treasure vaults of Opar—it was my idea to come here and steal it and to
find a man who could impersonate Lord Greystoke. Because of my
wickedness many men have died, and you, Lord Greystoke, and your lady,
have almost met your death—I do not dare to ask for forgiveness.”

Jane Clayton put her arm about the girl’s shoulder. “Avarice has been
the cause of many crimes since the world began,” she said, “and when
crime is invoked in its aid it assumes its most repulsive aspect and
brings most often its own punishment, as you, Flora, may well testify.
For my part I forgive you. I imagine that you have learned your lesson.”

“You have paid a heavy price for your folly,” said the ape-man. “You
have been punished enough. We will take you to your friends who are on
their way to the coast under escort of a friendly tribe. They cannot be
far distant, for, from the condition of the men when I saw them, long
marches are beyond their physical powers.”

The girl dropped to her knees at his feet. “How can I thank you for your
kindness?” she said. “But I would rather remain here in Africa with you
and Lady Greystoke, and work for you and show by my loyalty that I can
redeem the wrong I did you.”

Tarzan glanced at his wife questioningly, and Jane Clayton signified her
assent to the girl’s request.

“Very well, then,” said the ape-man, “you may remain with us, Flora.”

“You will never regret it,” said the girl. “I will work my fingers off
for you.”

The three, and Jad-bal-ja, had been three days upon the march toward
home when Tarzan, who was in the lead, paused, and, raising his head,
sniffed the jungle air. Then he turned to them with a smile. “My Waziri
are disobedient,” he said. “I sent them home and yet here they are,
coming toward us, directly away from home.”

A few minutes later they met the van of the Waziri, and great was the
rejoicing of the blacks when they found both their master and mistress
alive and unscathed.

“And now that we have found you,” said Tarzan, after the greetings were
over, and innumerable questions had been asked and answered, “tell me
what you did with the gold that you took from the camp of the
Europeans.”

“We hid it, O Bwana, where you told us to hide it,” replied Usula.

“I was not with you, Usula,” said the ape-man. “It was another, who
deceived Lady Greystoke even as he deceived you—a bad man—who
impersonated Tarzan of the Apes so cleverly that it is no wonder that
you were imposed upon.”

“Then it was not you who told us that your head had been injured and
that you could not remember the language of the Waziri?” demanded Usula.

“It was not I,” said Tarzan, “for my head has not been injured, and I
remember well the language of my children.”

“Ah,” cried Usula, “then it was not our Big Bwana who ran from Buto, the
rhinoceros?”

Tarzan laughed. “Did the other run from Buto?”

“That he did,” cried Usula; “he ran in great terror.”

“I do not know that I blame him,” said Tarzan, “for Buto is no pleasant
playfellow.”

“But our Big Bwana would not run from him,” said Usula, proudly.

“Even if another than I hid the gold it was you who dug the hole. Lead
me to the spot then, Usula.”

The Waziri constructed rude yet comfortable litters for the two white
women, though Jane Clayton laughed at the idea that it was necessary
that she be carried and insisted upon walking beside her bearers more
often than she rode. Flora Hawkes, however, weak and exhausted as she
was, could not have proceeded far without being carried, and was glad of
the presence of the brawny Waziri who bore her along the jungle trail so
easily.

It was a happy company that marched in buoyant spirits toward the spot
where the Waziri had cached the gold for Esteban. The blacks were
overflowing with good nature because they had found their master and
their mistress, while the relief and joy of Tarzan and Jane were too
deep for expression.

When at last they came to the place beside the river where they had
buried the gold the Waziri, singing and laughing, commenced to dig for
the treasure, but presently their singing ceased and their laughter was
replaced by expressions of puzzled concern.

For a while Tarzan watched them in silence and then a slow smile
overspread his countenance. “You must have buried it deep, Usula,” he
said.

The black scratched his head. “No, not so deep as this, Bwana,” he
cried. “I cannot understand it. We should have found the gold before
this.”

“Are you sure you are looking in the right place?” asked Tarzan.

“This is the exact spot, Bwana,” the black assured him, “but the gold is
not here. Someone has removed it since we buried it.”

“The Spaniard again,” commented Tarzan. “He was a slick customer.”

“But he could not have taken it alone,” said Usula. “There were many
ingots of it.”

“No,” said Tarzan, “he could not, and yet it is not here.”

The Waziri and Tarzan searched carefully about the spot where the gold
had been buried, but so clever had been the woodcraft of Owaza that he
had obliterated even from the keen senses of the ape-man every vestige
of the spoor that he and the Spaniard had made in carrying the gold from
the old hiding place to the new.

“It is gone,” said the ape-man, “but I shall see that it does not get
out of Africa,” and he despatched runners in various directions to
notify the chiefs of the friendly tribes surrounding his domain to watch
carefully every safari crossing their territory, and to let none pass
who carried gold.

“That will stop them,” he said after the runners had departed.

That night as they made their camp upon the trail toward home, the three
whites were seated about a small fire with Jad-bal-ja lying just behind
the ape-man, who was examining the leopard skin that the golden lion had
retrieved in his pursuit of the Spaniard, when Tarzan turned toward his
wife.

“You were right, Jane,” he said. “The treasure vaults of Opar are not
for me. This time I have lost not only the gold but a fabulous fortune
in diamonds as well, beside risking that greatest of all
treasures—yourself.”

“Let the gold and the diamonds go, John,” she said; “we have one
another, and Korak.”

“And a bloody leopard skin,” he supplemented, “with a mystery map
painted upon it in blood.”

Jad-bal-ja sniffed the hide and licked his chops in—anticipation or
retrospection—which?




[Illustration: With a cry of terror the Spaniard dived into the river]




                              CHAPTER XXI
                        AN ESCAPE AND A CAPTURE


AT sight of the true Tarzan, Esteban Miranda turned and fled blindly
into the jungle. His heart was cold with terror as he rushed on in blind
fear. He had no objective in mind. He did not know in what direction he
was going. His only thought—the thought which dominated him—was based
solely upon a desire to put as much distance as possible between himself
and the ape-man, and so he blundered on, forcing his way through dense
thickets of thorns that tore and lacerated his flesh until, at every
step he left a trail of blood behind him.

At the river’s edge the thorns reached out and seized again, as they had
several times before, the precious leopard skin to which he clung with
almost the same tenacity as he clung to life itself. But this time the
thorns would not leave go their hold, and as he struggled to tear it
away from them his eyes turned back in the direction from which he had
come. He heard the sound of a great body moving rapidly through the
thicket toward him, and an instant later saw the baleful glare of two
gleaming, yellow-green spots of flame. With a stifled cry of terror the
Spaniard relinquished his hold upon the leopard skin and, wheeling,
dived into the river.

As the black waters closed above his head Jad-bal-ja came to the edge of
the bank and looked down upon the widening circles which marked the spot
of his quarry’s disappearance, for Esteban, who was a strong swimmer,
struck boldly for the opposite side of the stream, keeping himself well
submerged.

For a moment the golden lion scanned the surface of the river, and then
he turned and sniffed at the hide the Spaniard had been forced to leave
behind, and grasping it in his jaws tore it from the thorns that held it
and carried it back to lay it at the feet of his master.

Forced at last to come to the surface for air the Spaniard arose amid a
mass of tangled foliage and branches. For a moment he thought that he
was lost, so tightly held was he by the entangling boughs, but presently
he forced his way upward, and as his head appeared above the surface of
the water amidst the foliage he discovered that he had arisen directly
beneath a fallen tree that was floating down the center of the stream.
After considerable effort he managed to draw himself up to the boughs
and find a place astride the great bole, and thus he floated down stream
in comparative safety.

He breathed a deep sigh of relief as he realized with what comparative
ease he had escaped the just vengeance of the ape-man. It is true that
he bemoaned the loss of the hide which carried the map to the location
of the hidden gold, but he still retained in his possession a far
greater treasure, and as he thought of it his hands gloatingly fondled
the bag of diamonds fastened to his loin cloth. Yet, even though he
possessed this great fortune in diamonds, his avaricious mind constantly
returned to the golden ingots by the waterfall.

“Owaza will get it,” he muttered to himself. “I never trusted the black
dog, and when he deserted me I knew well enough what his plans were.”

All night long Esteban Miranda floated down stream upon the fallen tree,
seeing no sign of life, until shortly after daybreak, he passed a native
village upon the shore.

It was the village of Obebe, the cannibal, and at sight of the strange
figure of the white giant floating down the stream upon the bole of a
tree, the young woman who espied him raised a great hue and cry until
the population of the village lined the shore watching him pass.

“It is a strange god,” cried one.

“It is the river devil,” said the witch doctor. “He is a friend of mine.
Now, indeed, shall we catch many fish if for each ten that you catch you
give one to me.”

“It is not the river devil,” rumbled the deep voice of Obebe, the
cannibal. “You are getting old,” he said to the witch doctor, “and of
late your medicine has been poor medicine, and now you tell me that
Obebe’s greatest enemy is the river devil. That is Tarzan of the Apes.
Obebe knows him well.” And in truth every cannibal chief in the vicinity
knew Tarzan of the Apes well and feared and hated him, for relentless
had been the ape-man’s war against them.

“It is Tarzan of the Apes,” repeated Obebe, “and he is in trouble.
Perhaps it is our chance to capture him.”

He called his warriors about him, and presently half a hundred brawny
young bucks started at a jog trot down the trail that paralleled the
river. For miles they followed the slowly moving tree which carried
Esteban Miranda until at last at a bend in the river the tree was caught
in the outer circle of a slow-moving eddy, which carried it beneath the
overhanging limbs of trees growing close to the river’s edge.

Cramped and chilled and hungry as he was, Esteban was glad of the
opportunity to desert his craft and gain the shore. And so, laboriously,
he drew himself up among the branches of the tree that momentarily
offered him a haven of retreat from the river, and crawling to its stem
lowered himself to the ground beneath, unconscious of the fact that in
the grasses around him squatted half a hundred cannibal warriors.

Leaning against the bole of the tree the Spaniard rested for a moment.
He felt for the diamonds and found that they were safe.

“I am a lucky devil, after all,” he said aloud, and almost
simultaneously the fifty blacks arose about him and leaped upon him. So
sudden was the attack, so overwhelming the force, that the Spaniard had
no opportunity to defend himself against them, with the result that he
was down and securely bound almost before he could realize what was
happening to him.

“Ah, Tarzan of the Apes, I have you at last,” gloated Obebe, the
cannibal, but Esteban did not understand a word the man said, and so he
could make no reply. He talked to Obebe in English, but that language
the latter did not understand.

Of only one thing was Esteban certain; that he was a prisoner and that
he was being taken back toward the interior. When they reached Obebe’s
village there was great rejoicing on the part of the women and the
children and the warriors who had remained behind. But the witch doctor
shook his head and made wry faces and dire prophecies.

“You have seized the river devil,” he said. “We shall catch no more
fish, and presently a great sickness will fall upon Obebe’s people and
they will all die like flies.” But Obebe only laughed at the witch
doctor for, being an old man and a great king, he had accumulated much
wisdom and, with the acquisition of wisdom man is more inclined to be
skeptical in matters of religion.

“You may laugh now, Obebe,” said the witch doctor, “but later you will
not laugh. Wait and see.”

“When, with my own hands, I kill Tarzan of the Apes, then indeed shall I
laugh,” replied the chief, “and when I and my warriors have eaten his
heart and his flesh, then, indeed, shall we no longer fear any of your
devils.”

“Wait,” cried the witch doctor angrily, “and you shall see.”

They took the Spaniard, securely bound, and threw him into a filthy hut,
through the doorway of which he could see the women of the village
preparing cooking fires and pots for the feast of the coming night. A
cold sweat stood out upon the brow of Esteban Miranda as he watched
these gruesome preparations, the significance of which he could not
misinterpret, when coupled with the gestures and the glances that were
directed toward the hut where he lay, by the inhabitants of the village.

The afternoon was almost spent and the Spaniard felt that he could count
the hours of life remaining to him upon possibly two fingers of one
hand, when there came from the direction of the river a series of
piercing screams which shattered the quiet of the jungle, and brought
the inhabitants of the village to startled attention, and an instant
later sent them in a mad rush in the direction of the fear-laden
shrieks. But they were too late and reached the river only just in time
to see a woman dragged beneath the surface by a huge crocodile.

“Ah, Obebe, what did I tell you?” demanded the witch doctor, exultantly.
“Already has the devil god commenced his revenge upon your people.”

The ignorant villagers, steeped in superstition, looked fearfully from
their witch doctor to their chief. Obebe scowled, “He is Tarzan of the
Apes,” he insisted.

“He is the river devil who has taken the shape of Tarzan of the Apes,”
insisted the witch doctor.

“We shall see,” replied Obebe. “If he is the river devil he can escape
our bonds. If he is Tarzan of the Apes he cannot. If he is the river
devil he will not die a natural death, like men die, but will live on
forever. If he is Tarzan of the Apes some day he will die. We will keep
him, then, and see, and that will prove whether or not he is Tarzan of
the Apes or the river devil.”

“How?” asked the witch doctor.

“It is very simple,” replied Obebe. “If some morning we find that he has
escaped we will know that he is the river devil, and because we have not
harmed him but have fed him well while he has been here in our village,
he will befriend us and no harm will come of it. But if he does not
escape we will know that he is Tarzan of the Apes, provided he dies a
natural death. And so, if he does not escape, we shall keep him until he
dies and then we shall know that he was, indeed, Tarzan of the Apes.”

“But suppose he does not die?” asked the witch doctor, scratching his
woolly head.

“Then,” exclaimed Obebe triumphantly, “we will know that you are right,
and that he was, indeed, the river devil.”

Obebe went and ordered women to take food to the Spaniard while the
witch doctor stood, where Obebe had left him, in the middle of the
street, still scratching his head in thought.

And thus was Esteban Miranda, possessor of the most fabulous fortune in
diamonds that the world had ever known, condemned to life imprisonment
in the village of Obebe, the cannibal.

While he had been lying in the hut his traitorous confederate, Owaza,
from the opposite bank of the river from the spot where he and Esteban
had hidden the golden ingots, saw Tarzan and his Waziri come and search
for the gold and go away again, and the following morning Owaza came
with fifty men whom he had recruited from a neighboring village and dug
up the gold and started with it toward the coast.

That night Owaza made camp just outside a tiny village of a minor chief,
who was weak in warriors. The old fellow invited Owaza into his
compound, and there he fed him and gave him native beer, while the
chief’s people circulated among Owaza’s boys plying them with
innumerable questions until at last the truth leaked out and the chief
knew that Owaza’s porters were carrying a great store of yellow gold.

When the chief learned this for certain he was much perturbed, but
finally a smile crossed his face as he talked with the half-drunken
Owaza.

“You have much gold with you,” said the old chief, “and it is very
heavy. It will be hard to get your boys to carry it all the way back to
the coast.”

“Yes,” said Owaza, “but I shall pay them well.”

“If they did not have to carry it so far from home you would not have to
pay them so much, would you?” asked the chief.

“No,” said Owaza, “but I cannot dispose of it this side of the coast.”

“I know where you can dispose of it within two days’ march,” replied the
old chief.

“Where?” demanded Owaza. “And who here in the interior will buy it?”

“There is a white man who will give you a little piece of paper for it
and you can take that paper to the coast and get the full value of your
gold.”

“Who is this white man?” demanded Owaza, “and where is he?”

“He is a friend of mine,” said the chief, “and if you wish I will take
you to him on the morrow, and you can bring with you all your gold and
get the little piece of paper.”

“Good,” said Owaza, “and then I shall not have to pay the carriers but a
very small amount.”

The carriers were glad, indeed, to learn the next day that they were not
to go all the way to the coast, for even the lure of payment was not
sufficient to overcome their dislike to so long a journey, and their
fear of being at so great a distance from home. They were very happy,
therefore, as they set forth on a two days’ march toward the northeast.
And Owaza was happy and so was the old chief, who accompanied them
himself, though why he was happy about it Owaza could not guess.

They had marched for almost two days when the chief sent one of his own
men forward with a message.

“It is to my friend,” he said, “to tell him to come and meet us and lead
us to his village.” And a few hours later, as the little caravan emerged
from the jungle onto a broad, grassy plain, they saw not far from them,
and approaching rapidly, a large band of warriors. Owaza halted.

“Who are those?” he demanded.

“Those are the warriors of my friend,” replied the chief, “and he is
with them. See?” and he pointed toward a figure at the head of the
blacks, who were approaching at a trot, their spears and white plumes
gleaming in the sunshine.

“They come for war and not for peace,” said Owaza tearfully.

“That depends upon you, Owaza,” replied the chief.

“I do not understand you,” said Owaza.

“But you will in a few minutes after my friend has come.”

As the advancing warriors approached more closely Owaza saw a giant
white at their head—a white whom he mistook for Esteban—the
confederate he had so traitorously deserted. He turned upon the chief.
“You have betrayed me,” he cried.

“Wait,” said the old chief; “nothing that belongs to you shall be taken
from you.”

“The gold is not his,” cried Owaza. “He stole it,” and he pointed at
Tarzan who had approached and halted before him, but who ignored him
entirely and turned to the chief.

“Your runner came,” he said to the old man, “and brought your message,
and Tarzan and his Waziri have come to see what they could do for their
old friend.”

The chief smiled. “Your runner came to me, O Tarzan, four days since,
and two days later came this man with his carriers, bearing golden
ingots toward the coast. I told him that I had a friend who would buy
them, giving him a little piece of paper for them, but that, of course,
only in case the gold belonged to Owaza.”

The ape-man smiled. “You have done well, my friend,” he said. “The gold
does not belong to Owaza.”

“It does not belong to you, either,” cried Owaza. “You are not Tarzan of
the Apes. I know you. You came with the four white men and the white
woman to steal the gold from Tarzan’s country, and then you stole it
from your own friends.”

The chief and the Waziri laughed. The ape-man smiled one of his slow
smiles.

“The other was an impostor, Owaza,” he said, “but _I_ am Tarzan of the
Apes, and I thank you for bringing my gold to me. Come,” he said, “it is
but a few more miles to my home,” and the ape-man compelled Owaza to
direct his carriers to bear the golden ingots to the Greystoke bungalow.
There Tarzan fed the carriers and paid them, and the next morning sent
them back toward their own country, and he sent Owaza with them, but not
without a gift of value, accompanied with an admonition that the black
never again return to Tarzan’s country.

When they had all departed, and Tarzan and Jane and Korak were standing
upon the veranda of the bungalow with Jad-bal-ja lying at their feet,
the ape-man threw an arm about his mate’s shoulders.

“I shall have to retract what I said about the gold of Opar not being
for me, for you see before you a new fortune that has come all the way
from the treasure vaults of Opar without any effort on my part.”

“Now, if someone would only bring your diamonds back,” laughed Jane.

“No chance of that,” said Tarzan. “They are unquestionably at the bottom
of the Ugogo River,” and far away, upon the banks of the Ugogo, in the
village of Obebe, the cannibal, Esteban Miranda lay in the filth of the
hut that had been assigned to him, gloating over the fortune that he
could never utilize as he entered upon a life of captivity that the
stubbornness and superstition of Obebe had doomed him to undergo.




                           TRANSCRIBER NOTES

Misspelled words and printer errors have been corrected. Where multiple
spellings occur, majority use has been employed.

Punctuation has been maintained except where obvious printer errors
occur.

Illustrations by James Allen St. John (1872-1957) were moved to
facilitate page layout. The cover is the original first edition cover,
also illustrated by James Allen St. John.










End of Project Gutenberg's Tarzan and the Golden Lion, by Edgar Rice Burroughs